Selected quad for the lemma: sin_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sin_n believe_v jesus_n remission_n 4,257 5 9.2662 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A29753 Quakerisme the path-way to paganisme, or, A vieu of the Quakers religion being an examination of the theses and apologie of Robert Barclay, one of their number, published lately in Latine, to discover to the world, what that is, which they hold and owne for the only true Christian religion / by John Brown ... Brown, John, 1610?-1679.; R. M. C. 1678 (1678) Wing B5033; ESTC R10085 718,829 590

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

follow_v upon_o a_o reject_a mediator_n and_o the_o woe_n of_o bethsaida_n above_o the_o woe_n of_o tyrus_n &_o sydon_n &_o the_o woe_n of_o capernaum_n above_o the_o woe_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sodom_n i_o shall_v grant_v his_o consequence_n to_o be_v good_a though_o it_o be_v absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a in_o a_o general_a sense_n his_o question_n ask_v why_o such_o as_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n death_n &_o resurrection_n can_v be_v save_v as_o well_o as_o such_o as_o never_o hear_v of_o adam_n first_o sin_n can_v be_v damn_v therefore_o be_v no_o proof_n and_o the_o answer_n be_v manifest_a because_o all_o be_v natural_o and_o federal_o in_o adam_n but_o all_o be_v not_o so_o in_o christ_n and_o it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o appoint_v this_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o can_v be_v without_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v think_v it_o good_a to_o apply_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n by_o bring_v such_o who_o be_v to_o partake_v thereof_o within_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o covenant_n within_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o under_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o to_o join_v to_o the_o church_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v act._n 2_o 47._o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v esai_n 53_o 11._o by_o his_o knowledge_n or_o by_o knowledge_n of_o he_o shall_v my_o righteous_a servant_n justify_v many_o and_o the_o predestinate_v one_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o redemption_n purchase_v by_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n grace_n wherein_o he_o have_v abound_v towards_o they_o in_o all_o wisdom_n and_o prudence_n have_v make_v know_v unto_o they_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o will_n according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n which_o he_o purpose_v in_o himself_o ephes._n 1_o 7_o 8_o 9_o and_o if_o the_o will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n so_o ordain_v matter_n for_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n will_v not_o satisfy_v this_o quaker_n but_o he_o will_v frame_v a_o gospel_n out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n we_o can_v help_v it_o but_o must_v tell_v he_o we_o will_v rather_o believe_v god_n and_o submit_v to_o his_o wise_a dispensation_n than_o embrace_v the_o delusion_n of_o fantastical_a quaker_n who_o purpose_n to_o overturn_v the_o whole_a gospel_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o destroy_v soul_n his_o simile_n of_o medicine_n cure_v such_o as_o know_v not_o whereof_o it_o be_v make_v nor_o by_o who_o be_v but_o a_o further_a evidence_n of_o his_o desperate_a design_n to_o destroy_v the_o gospel_n for_o medicine_n will_v as_o well_o cure_v such_o as_o know_v nothing_o of_o its_o composition_n or_o author_n as_o such_o as_o know_v both_o and_o thus_o he_o will_v infer_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o more_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o composition_n and_o author_n of_o a_o medicament_n be_v to_o its_o work_n on_o humour_n but_o alas_o the_o silly_a man_n know_v not_o the_o way_n of_o the_o gospel_n work_v on_o soul_n but_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v in_o a_o physical_a manner_n as_o medicine_n work_v on_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o body_n wherein_o he_o declare_v his_o intolerable_a folly_n and_o ignorance_n beside_o his_o desperate_a design_n 7._o but_o he_o alleidge_v against_o we_o the_o instance_n of_o infant_n and_o deaf_a person_n to_o very_o little_a purpose_n see_v his_o question_n be_v of_o adult_a person_n and_o of_o such_o also_o as_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v and_o as_o for_o infant_n we_o grant_v no_o salvation_n to_o such_o unless_o they_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n and_o bear_v within_o the_o visible_a church_n not_o to_o all_o such_o either_o that_o die_v in_o infancy_n but_o to_o those_o only_a who_o belong_v to_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o same_o we_o say_v of_o deaf_a person_n and_o we_o except_o both_o these_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o outward_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o every_o exception_n destroy_v not_o the_o rule_n but_o confirm_v it_o rather_o in_o all_o case_n not_o except_v his_o say_n that_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o partake_n of_o the_o sacrament_n give_v no_o certain_a title_n unto_o salvation_n be_v impertinent_a for_o we_o say_v not_o that_o all_o such_o as_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v certain_o be_v save_v but_o only_o that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n without_o the_o church_n we_o know_v that_o many_o be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n who_o be_v n●t_a member_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n but_o we_o know_v likewise_o that_o none_o be_v member_n of_o the_o invinsible_a church_n actual_o who_o be_v not_o member_n also_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n his_o question_n pag._n 115._o why_o our_o charity_n do_v not_o extend_v to_o those_o without_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v impossible_a a●_n well_o as_o to_o such_o within_o the_o church_n receive_v a_o short_a answer_n to_o wit_n because_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n and_o christian_a charity_n must_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o by_o the_o fancy_n of_o a_o delude_a quaker_n he_o multiply_v his_o question_n instead_o of_o probation_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o the_o quaker_n for_o he_o ask_v again_o be_v not_o one_o in_o china_n and_o india_n as_o excusable_a for_o not_o know_v that_o which_o he_o never_o hear_v as_o a_o deaf_a man_n to_o which_o we_o answer_v yes_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o one_o may_v be_v as_o well_o save_v as_o the_o other_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n and_o church_n of_o salvation_n be_v we_o here_o speak_v and_o not_o of_o person_n be_v excusable_a or_o inexcusable_a we_o know_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o paul_n say_v rom._n 2_o 12._o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v without_o law_n shall_v also_o perish_v without_o law_n and_o we_o know_v that_o albeit_o god_n will_v not_o challenge_v the_o indian_n or_o man_n of_o china_n who_o never_o have_v any_o possible_a opportunity_n of_o hear_v the_o gospel_n for_o ignorance_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o they_o may_v and_o will_v perish_v be_v without_o the_o save_a mean_n of_o grace_n and_o if_o he_o think_v otherways_o let_v he_o go_v preach_v up_o the_o light_n within_o among_o they_o and_o not_o labour_n to_o blind_v our_o eye_n that_o we_o ma●_n not_o see_v the_o sun_n with_o his_o smoke_a snuff_n 8._o he_o have_v another_o proof_n from_o act._n 10_o 34._o but_o how_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o cornelius_n converse_v so_o much_o among_o the_o jew_n have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o of_o salvation_n through_o he_o though_o he_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o know_v that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n do_v we_o not_o find_v that_o peter_n clear_v up_o to_o he_o that_o great_a question_n and_o tell_v he_o how_o god_n anoint_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o power_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n peter_n preach_v unto_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o that_o to_o he_o give_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o through_o his_o name_n whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n vers_fw-la 38_o 43._o and_o by_o this_o instance_n peter_n be_v bring_v to_o understand_v that_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n administration_n in_o every_o nation_n he_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o work_v righteousness_n be_v accept_v with_o he_o so_o that_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n be_v not_o now_o restrict_v to_o one_o nation_n as_o of_o old_a under_o the_o law_n peter_n have_v yet_o too_o much_o of_o that_o national_a prejudice_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v against_o the_o gentile_n stick_v in_o he_o and_o so_o think_v that_o all_o except_o the_o jew_n be_v always_o to_o remain_v as_o our_o cast_v and_o to_o have_v no_o share_n or_o interest_n in_o the_o gospel_n blessing_n and_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o messiah_n but_o now_o he_o be_v make_v to_o understand_v the_o matter_n aright_o our_o quaker_n may_v if_o he_o will_v read_v calvin_n and_o beza_n both_o upon_o the_o place_n and_o see_v his_o imagination_n confute_v 9_o next_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o job_n be_v a_o perfect_a man_n etc._n etc._n and_o enquire_v who_o teach_v he_o how_o do_v he_o understand_v the_o fall_n of_o adam_n out_o of_o which_o scripture_n do_v he_o draw_v all_o that_o excellent_a knowledge_n and_o then_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v this_o inward_a grace_n that_o teach_v he_o but_o all_o this_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o very_a improbable_a conjecture_n to_o wit_n that_o job_n be_v coaetaneus_fw-la with_o moses_n and_o so_o be_v without_o the_o church_n which_o the_o lord_n erect_v among_o the_o
gate_n it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o people_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o may_v be_v rom._n 3_o 25_o 26._o why_o do_v god_n set_v forth_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n it_o be_v to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a that_o he_o may_v be_v just_a and_o the_o justifier_n of_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o jesus_n a_o certain_a real_a thing_n many_o more_o passage_n may_v be_v add_v to_o this_o purpose_n but_o these_o may_v suffice_v to_o discover_v the_o absurd_a falsehood_n of_o this_o quaker_n doctrine_n 17._o add_v 6._o such_o passage_n as_o mention_v the_o actual_a accomplishment_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n death_n where_o it_o will_v yet_o more_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v no_o mere_a may_v be_v or_o possible_a thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v to_o have_v a_o certain_a b●ing_n and_o reality_n as_o to_o the_o person_n for_o who_o it_o be_v design_v such_o as_o heb._n 1_o 3._o when_o he_o have_v by_o himself_o purge_v our_o sin_n can_v their_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v purge_v who_o pine_v away_o in_o hell_n for_o ever_o because_o of_o their_o sin_n can_v this_o be_v true_a if_o no_o man_n have_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a possible_a and_o may_v be_v redemption_n it_o may_v have_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o not_o one_o person_n shall_v have_v be_v actual_o save_v so_o heb._n 9_o 12._o by_o his_o own_o blood_n he_o enter_v in_o once_o into_o the_o holy_a place_n have_v obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n be_v a_o mere_a possible_a redemption_n to_o be_v call_v a_o eternal_a redemption_n and_o be_v that_o all_o that_o christ_n obtain_v then_o christ_n blood_n be_v more_o ineffectual_a in_o the_o truth_n than_o the_o type_n be_v in_o its_o typicalness_n for_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n and_o the_o ash_n of_o a_o hief_o sprinkle_v the_o unclean_a do_v not_o obtain_v a_o possible_a and_o may_v be-sanctification_a and_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o do_v actual_o and_o real_o sanctify_v to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n vers_fw-la 13._o again_o vers_fw-la 14._o which_o also_o confirm_v what_o be_v now_o say_v how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n purge_v your_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n so_o that_o all_o such_o for_o who_o he_o offer_v himself_o and_o shed_v his_o blood_n and_o none_o else_o have_v their_o conscience_n purge_v from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n and_o who_o there_fw-mi say_v that_o this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o or_o be_v a_o mere_a may_v be_v which_o the_o apostle_n both_o restrict_v and_o assert_v as_o a_o most_o certain_a real_a thing_n again_o vers_fw-la 26._o but_o now_o once_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n have_v he_o appear_v to_o put_v away_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o so_o that_o he_o do_v actual_o and_o real_o and_o not_o possible_o and_o potential_o only_a put_v away_o sin_n the_o sin_n viz._n of_o those_o for_o who_o he_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n even_o of_o they_o that_o look_v for_o he_o and_o to_o who_o he_o shall_v appear_v the_o second_o time_n without_o sin_n unto_o salvation_n vers_fw-la 28._o and_o sure_a no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n will_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n gal._n 3_o 13._o christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o 24_o that_o the_o blessing_n of_o abraham_n may_v come_v on_o the_o gentile_n through_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o faith_n here_o be_v three_o end_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n redemption_n mention_v which_o no_o man_n will_v say_v be_v common_a to_o all_o viz._n redemption_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n &_o this_o be_v real_o &_o not_o potential_o only_o do_v by_o christ_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blessing_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v insure_v to_o such_o as_o be_v redeem_a from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o l●w_n and_o to_o none_o else_o so_o ephes._n 2_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o but_o now_o in_o christ_n jesus_n you_o who_o sometime_o be_v afar_o off_o be_v make_v nigh_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v our_o peace_n who_o have_v make_v both_o one_o and_o have_v break_v down_o the_o middle_a wall_n of_o partition_n between_o we_o have_v abolish_v in_o his_o flesh_n the_o enmity_n the_o law_n of_o commandment_n in_o ordinance_n for_o to_o make_v to_o himself_o of_o twain_o one_o n●w_a man_n so_o make_v peace_n and_o that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v both_o unto_o god_n in_o one_o body_n by_o the_o cross_n have_v slay_v the_o enmity_n thereby_o to_o which_o add_v the_o parallel_n place_n col._n 1_o 21_o 22._o &_o 2_o 14_o 15._o be_v all_o this_o delivery_n from_o wrath_n enmity_n law_n of_o commandment_n &_o whatever_o be_v against_o we_o but_o a_o mere_a potential_a thing_n and_o a_o may_v be_v common_a to_o all_o in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o cause_v it_o take_v effect_n or_o not_o as_o they_o please_v esai_n 53_o 5._o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o with_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v with_o 1_o cor._n 15.3_o christ_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n &_o 1_o pet._n 2_o 24._o who_o his_o own_o self_n bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n by_o who_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v how_o can_v we_o then_o imagine_v that_o all_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a may_v be_v see_v he_o be_v so_o bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n so_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n so_o bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n as_o that_o thereby_o all_o in_o who_o room_n he_o stand_v be_v heal_v by_o his_o stripe_n the_o apostle_n do_v moreover_o full_o clear_v this_o matter_n rom._n 5_o 6._o christ_n die_v for_o the_o ungodly_a be_v this_o for_o all_o or_o be_v it_o to_o have_v a_o uncertane_v end_n and_o effect_v no_o vers_fw-la 9_o much_o more_o than_o be_v now_o justify_v by_o his_o blood_n we_o shall_v be_v save_v from_o wrath_n through_o he_o the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n for_o who_o he_o die_v be_v such_o as_o become_v justify_v by_o his_o blood_n and_o shall_v at_o length_n be_v full_o save_v from_o wrath_n and_o again_o vers_fw-la 10._o for_o if_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n much_o more_o be_v reconcile_v we_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o his_o life_n upon_o his_o death_n follow_v reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o then_o salvation_n and_o his_o death_n be_v for_o no_o more_o than_o his_o life_n be_v for_o by_o he_o also_o they_o receive_v a_o atonement_n vers_fw-la 11._o as_o the_o consequence_n and_o effect_n of_o adam_n sin_n do_v certain_o and_o not_o by_o a_o may_v be_v redound_v to_o all_o that_o he_o represent_v and_o engage_v for_o so_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n death_n do_v as_o certain_o come_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v his_o as_o the_o apostle_n clear_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n lay_v the_o advantage_n on_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o vers_fw-la 15._o much_o more_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gift_n by_o grace_n by_o one_o man_n jesus_n christ_n have_v abound_v unto_o many_o vers_n 16._o but_o the_o free_a gift_n be_v of_o many_o offence_n unto_o justification_n vers_fw-la 17._o much_o more_o they_o which_o receive_v abundance_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v reign_v in_o life_n by_o one_o jesus_n christ_n vers_fw-la 18._o even_o so_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o one_o the_o free_a gift_n come_v upon_o all_o man_n to_o justification_n of_o life_n ver_fw-la 19_o so_o by_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o shall_v many_o be_v make_v righteous_a vers_fw-la 21_o so_o may_v grace_v reign_n through_o righteousness_n unto_o eternal_a life_n by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n be_v all_o this_o a_o common_a thing_n and_o a_o mere_a may_v be_v or_o possibility_n joh._n 10_o 11._o he_o give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n &_o vers_fw-la 15._o but_o may_v they_o for_o all_o that_o perish_v no_o in_o no_o wise_a vers_fw-la 28._o and_o i_o give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n and_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v he_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n and_o may_v have_v it_o more_o abundant_o vers_fw-la 10._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o say_v joh._n 6.33_o that_o he_o
and_o consequent_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n 3_o how_o can_v the_o man_n not_o be_v denominate_v from_o this_o seed_n and_o account_v a_o holy_a man_n upon_o the_o account_n thereof_o see_v he_o call_v it_o before_o a_o spiritual_a principle_n and_o organ_n and_o the_o vehicle_n of_o god_n and_o that_o wherein_o god_n dwell_v and_o from_o which_o god_n and_o christ_n can_v be_v separate_v and_o a_o divine_a and_o glorious_a life_n shall_v a_o man_n have_v a_o spiritual_a principle_n of_o holiness_n in_o he_o and_o a_o divine_a life_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v account_v a_o spiritual_a and_o holy_a man_n nay_o shall_v a_o man_n have_v christ_n in_o he_o dwell_v and_o abide_v in_o he_o &_o yet_o not_o be_v call_v a_o holy_a man_n shall_v a_o man_n have_v god_n dwell_v in_o he_o as_o christ_n have_v though_o not_o in_o that_o measure_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v account_v a_o spiritual_a holy_a man_n 4._o the_o scripture_n acquant_v we_o with_o no_o seed_n or_o principle_n of_o a_o spiritual_a life_n communicate_v to_o every_o man_n by_o his_o birth_n or_o conception_n nor_o to_o any_o but_o in_o regeneration_n when_o they_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n joh._n 1_o 13._o and_o these_o be_v they_o who_o receive_v christ_n offer_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n receive_v power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n vers_fw-la 12._o for_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spirit_n joh._n 3_o 6._o this_o be_v so_o we_o pass_v his_o comparison_n and_o that_o which_o he_o add_v as_o be_v found_v thereupon_o all_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o fundamental_a error_n his_o reason_n for_o which_o be_v afterward_o to_o be_v examine_v 14._o in_o the_o four_o place_n §_o 15._o he_o say_v that_o hereby_o they_o do_v not_o derogate_v from_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n of_o christ._n but_o how_o be_v this_o imaginable_a see_v this_o seed_n which_o be_v bear_v with_o every_o man_n will_v sufficient_o save_v they_o if_o they_o will_v but_o suffer_v it_o to_o work_v in_o they_o so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o a_o man_n once_o to_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n name_v in_o reference_n to_o salvation_n and_o what_o improvement_n do_v or_o can_v this_o seed_n or_o light_n in_o heathen_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n make_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o christ_n the_o true_a messiah_n by_o his_o knowledge_n that_o be_v by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o as_o make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o sin_n and_o as_o bear_v their_o iniquity_n shall_v justify_v many_o esai_n 53_o 10_o 11._o and_o further_o we_o hear_v before_o how_o this_o man_n join_v with_o socinian_n in_o deny_v the_o deity_n and_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o how_o have_v do_v this_o he_o can_v plead_v for_o or_o maintain_v christ_n sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n be_v intelligible_a only_o to_o quaker_n who_o can_v as_o they_o pretend_v understand_v unintelligible_a thing_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o vindicate_v himself_o and_o the_o rest_n from_o this_o imputation_n he_o say_v they_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v write_v of_o christ_n conception_n birth_n life_n miracle_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n to_o be_v true_a and_o what_o then_o socinian_n will_v say_v the_o same_o and_o yet_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o christ_n sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n do_v you_o believe_v that_o that_o body_n which_o be_v crucify_v at_o jerusalem_n rise_v again_o and_o be_v now_o in_o glory_n speak_v your_o mind_n here_o if_o you_o there_fw-mi &_o that_o that_o body_n be_v personal_o unite_v to_o the_o godhead_n we_o think_v say_v he_o further_o all_o to_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v reveal_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o but_o what_o will_v the_o belief_n of_o they_o signify_v see_v the_o devil_n believe_v they_o to_o be_v true_a yea_o say_v he_o we_o think_v incredulity_n here_o damnable_a and_o why_o so_o because_o that_o divine_a seed_n will_v incline_v all_o to_o believe_v for_o it_o assent_v to_o all_o truth_n that_o be_v declare_v but_o all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o historical_a faith_n can_v effectuate_v no_o salvation_n have_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v no_o stranger_n to_o this_o historical_a faith_n this_o divine_a seed_n in_o he_o also_o incline_v he_o to_o believe_v this_o truth_n if_o not_o than_o this_o divine_a seed_n be_v not_o requisite_a unto_o this_o faith_n if_o yea_o then_o god_n and_o christ_n dwell_v in_o the_o devil_n and_o he_o be_v partaker_n of_o a_o glorious_a and_o divine_a life_n for_o this_o and_o more_o be_v say_v above_o of_o this_o seed_n as_o we_o hear_v 15._o we_o hear_v nothing_o yet_o say_v for_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n of_o christ_n therefore_o he_o add_v that_o they_o firm_o believe_v that_o christ_n come_n be_v necessary_a that_o by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n he_o may_v offer_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o who_o ever_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o satisfactory_a sacrifice_n these_o be_v fair_a word_n but_o contain_v nothing_o that_o can_v satisfy_v any_o understand_a person_n for_o the_o socinian_o themselves_o will_v say_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o hoornb_n socinianismi_fw-la confut._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 490.491_o do_v he_o say_v that_o the_o quaker_n grant_v that_o christ_n suffering_n be_v a_o proper_a punishment_n suffer_v by_o he_o as_o a_o cautioner_n in_o the_o room_n and_o stead_n of_o any_o sinner_n and_o that_o thereby_o he_o do_v true_o and_o proper_o make_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o go●_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n and_o so_o purchase_v unto_o they_o grace_n and_o glory_n &_o remission_n of_o sin_n have_v pacify_v god_n and_o reconcile_v he_o unto_o they_o by_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n and_o so_o proper_o and_o true_o do_v redeem_v his_o people_n as_o the_o socinian_o make_v christ_n only_o a_o metaphorical_a god_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n so_o they_o ascribe_v to_o he_o a_o metaphorical_a redemption_n and_o satisfaction_n and_o if_o this_o patron_n of_o the_o quaker_n can_v say_v no_o more_o on_o their_o behalf_n it_o be_v too_o too_o manifest_a how_o small_a account_n they_o have_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n of_o christ._n and_o what_o if_o all_o this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o christ_n within_o they_o 16._o yet_o he_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o they_o magnify_v and_o exalt_v christ_n propitiation_n above_o what_o we_o do_v we_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o as_o all_o man_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o evil_a fruit_n of_o adam_n fall_n though_o thousand_o never_o hear_v of_o he_o so_o many_o may_v feel_v the_o virtue_n of_o this_o divine_a seed_n and_o by_o it_o be_v turn_v from_o evil_a to_o good_a albeit_o th●y_v be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o christ_n by_o who_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n they_o obtain_v this_o benefit_n ans._n 1._o all_o man_n be_v actual_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o evil_a fruit_n of_o adam_n fall_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v a_o be_v because_o this_o be_v propagat_v by_o nature_n all_o mankind_n be_v in_o adam_n as_o their_o head_n and_o root_n but_o grace_n be_v not_o propagat_n by_o nature_n have_v adam_n this_o seed_n in_o he_o after_o he_o fall_v and_o before_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v make_v to_o he_o then_o he_o lose_v it_o not_o by_o the_o fall_n but_o by_o the_o fall_n sure_a he_o lose_v all_o inclination_n to_o spiritual_a good_a if_o he_o represent_v all_o mankind_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o work_n then_o as_o his_o fall_n do_v redound_v in_o the_o one_o to_o the_o actual_a condemnation_n of_o his_o posterity_n so_o shall_v his_o faith_n for_o we_o charitable_o suppose_v he_o be_v a_o believer_n redound_v in_o the_o other_o to_o the_o actual_a salvation_n of_o all_o of_o what_o necessity_n then_o shall_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v 2._o all_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o evil_a fruit_n of_o adam_n fall_n actual_o and_o not_o potential_o only_a for_o there_o be_v none_o that_o escape_v but_o the_o feel_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o this_o divine_a seed_n be_v but_o a_o possibility_n so_o that_o notwithstanding_o this_o divine_a seed_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o all_o yet_o it_o may_v so_o fall_v out_o that_o not_o one_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o to_o have_v a_o power_n only_o to_o feel_v this_o seed_n import_v no_o actual_a
then_o he_o be_v so_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n hereof_o that_o he_o be_v assure_v no_o man_n that_o read_v this_o and_o deal_v honest_o with_o his_o own_o heart_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n will_v not_o acquiesce_v thereunto_o and_o in_o some_o measure_n be_v sensible_a thereof_o close_v with_o this_o epiphonema_n that_o this_o be_v the_o precious_a day_n of_o visitation_n which_o who_o soever_o resist_v not_o shall_v be_v happy_a for_o ever_o this_o be_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v as_o lightning_n shine_v from_o east_n to_o west_n and_o as_o the_o wind_n or_o the_o spirit_n breathe_v into_o the_o soul_n and_o its_o sound_n be_v hear_v but_o we_o know_v not_o whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o go_v 24._o to_o all_o which_o i_o shall_v short_o reply_v begin_v at_o what_o be_v last_o 1._o that_o spirit_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v joh._n 3_o that_o blow_v where_o it_o list_v wait_v not_o for_o man_n not-resisting_a no_o more_o than_o the_o wind_n whereunto_o christ_n there_o liken_v it_o and_o it_o through_v its_o effect_n the_o new_a birth_n for_o he_o add_v so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n will_v this_o man_n there_fw-mi to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v partaker_n of_o this_o new_a birth_n 2._o how_o impertinet_fw-la that_o other_o expression_n be_v which_o christ_n have_v mat._n 24_o 27._o unto_o the_o purpose_n which_o this_o man_n be_v now_o handle_v he_o may_v read_v that_o run_v t●_n but_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o these_o man_n to_o play_v thus_o bold_o with_o the_o scripture_n as_o man_n that_o have_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n 3._o he_o take_v no_o notice_n that_o his_o write_n be_v not_o likely_a to_o come_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o heathen_n pagan_n turk_n and_o barbarian_n and_o so_o his_o proclamation_n of_o this_o day_n of_o visitation_n and_o fair_a opportunity_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o be_v but_o vain_a 4._o we_o be_v to_o see_v afterward_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o god_n have_v plant_v such_o a_o seed_n in_o every_o man_n 5._o he_o say_v here_o that_o god_n have_v certain_a singular_a time_n wherein_o he_o thus_o come_v but_o in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n we_o observe_v another_o account_n of_o this_o day_n of_o visitation_n as_o of_o a_o day_n that_o do_v not_o go_v and_o come_v again_o as_o the_o angel_n move_v of_o the_o water_n of_o bethesda_n or_o he_o must_v say_v that_o this_o day_n come_v but_o once_o in_o a_o man_n whole_a life_n time_n so_o that_o if_o man_n repent_v not_o at_o that_o very_a hour_n or_o moment_n they_o shall_v never_o be_v save_v and_o if_o this_o be_v his_o doctrine_n it_o be_v neither_o consonont_n to_o his_o expression_n elsewhere_o not_o to_o the_o scripture_n nor_o be_v it_o comfortable_a to_o either_o one_o or_o other_o 6_o it_o be_v absolute_o false_a that_o god_n offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n &_o salvation_n to_o every_o man_n upon_o condition_n of_o non-refusal_n for_o he_o offer_v remission_n and_o salvation_n to_o none_o but_o in_o christ_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n in_o jesus_n as_o the_o whole_a gospel_n clear_v and_o this_o offer_n be_v not_o make_v to_o any_o to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o preach_v for_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n whereby_o life_n and_o immortality_n be_v bring_v to_o light_n and_o wherein_o christ_n be_v hold_v forth_o as_o the_o propitiation_n it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v for_o therein_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n reveal_v from_o faith_n to_o faith_n rom._n 1_o 16_o 17._o so_o that_o this_o man_n doctrine_n destroy_v the_o whole_a gospel_n and_o render_v the_o whole_a administration_n thereof_o useless_a yea_o it_o take_v away_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o merit_n and_o blood_n shed_v when_o it_o take_v away_o faith_n that_o must_v lay_v hold_v upon_o it_o 7._o what_o be_v this_o not-dissenting_a &_o not-refusing_a that_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o arminian_n speak_v at_o this_o rate_n be_v this_o any_o thing_n else_o than_o the_o use_n of_o free_a will_n at_o who_o devotion_n christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n be_v this_o even_o this_o with_o the_o pelagianize_a socinianize_a and_o arminianize_a quaker_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o must_v wear_v the_o crown_n and_o have_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o to_o it_o must_v the_o everlasting_a song_n be_v sing_v glory_n honour_n and_o praise_n must_v be_v give_v to_o our_o own_o noble_a and_o well_o incline_v freewill_n that_o do_v not_o resist_v nor_o refuse_v in_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n let_v never_o my_o soul_n come_v into_o these_o man_n secret_a 8._o that_o god_n wonderful_o warm_v and_o mollifi_v the_o heart_n of_o every_o son_n of_o adam_n at_o some_o one_o time_n or_o other_o be_v mere_a quakerism_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o vain_a dream_n and_o that_o god_n wonderful_o mollifi_v &_o warm_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n in_o reference_n to_o salvation_n and_o that_o yet_o the_o man_n may_v refuse_v the_o call_n and_o perish_v may_v be_v true_a or_o false_a according_a as_o that_o mollify_a &_o warm_v be_v interpret_v but_o if_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o gracious_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v take_v it_o he_o proclaim_v armianisme_n if_o he_o take_v it_o for_o some_o common_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n &_o yet_o say_v that_o man_v not_o resist_v of_o this_o alone_o without_o any_o more_o will_v certain_o prove_v save_v he_o preach_v forth_o pelagianism_n and_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 9_o in_o fine_a we_o see_v that_o this_o plaster_n will_v not_o cover_v the_o sore_a nor_o free_v he_o from_o the_o charge_n of_o pelagianisme_n for_o pelagius_n say_v as_o much_o and_o more_o as_o vossius_fw-la hist._n pelag_n lib._n 3._o part_n 2._o thes._n 4._o clear_v out_o of_o augustine_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o pelagius_n explain_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o he_o at_o length_n come_v to_o acknowledge_v say_v it_o do_v nor_o consist_v in_o the_o law_n only_o but_o in_o the_o help_n and_o adjutorium_fw-la of_o god_n but_o this_o quaker_n will_v not_o admit_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o he_o be_v not_o necessary_a unto_o salvation_n yet_o hear_v pelagius_n the_o lord_n help_v we_o say_v he_o by_o his_o doctrine_n and_o revelation_n while_o be_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o heart_n while_o he_o illuminate_v we_o with_o the_o ineffable_a gift_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v not_o this_o as_o much_o as_o this_o quaker_n say_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o god_n stir_v up_o this_o light_n that_o be_v within_o every_o man_n nay_o it_o be_v more_o for_o pelagiu●_n hereby_o grant_v a_o real_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o the_o mind_n illuminate_v it_o by_o a_o unspeakable_a gift_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n but_o our_o quaker_n illumination_n be_v nothing_o but_o god_n put_v the_o natural_a conscience_n to_o work_v and_o will_v this_o quaker_n say_v more_o then_o or_o as_o much_o a_o pelagius_n say_v on_o these_o word_n god_n work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v god_n do_v this_o say_v he_o while_o he_o stir_v we_o up_o by_o the_o greatness_n of_o future_a glory_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o reward_n and_o while_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o wisdom_n he_o stir_v up_o the_o lazy_a will_n unto_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o while_o he_o persuade_v to_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a will_v this_o quaker_n say_v that_o god_n do_v even_o this_o much_o to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o heathen_n what_o knowledge_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o future_a glory_n or_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o rich_a recompense_n of_o reward_n what_o revelation_n of_o wisdom_n what_o love_n to_o the_o true_a and_o only_o god_n be_v or_o can_v be_v imagine_v to_o be_v among_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o heathen_n pelagius_n do_v very_o careful_o distinguish_v betwixt_o posse_n velle_fw-la &_o agere_fw-la and_o he_o say_v the_o first_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o god_n who_o bestow_v it_o upon_o his_o creature_n but_o the_o other_o two_o be_v whole_o of_o man_n now_o all_o that_o this_o quaker_n ascribe_v here_o to_o god_n be_v but_o he_o first_o possibility_n for_o the_o man_n be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n to_o will_n or_o will_v as_o he_o please_v and_o to_o operate_v or_o not_o operate_v as_o he_o think_v good_a this_o possibility_n pelagius_n say_v every_o man_n have_v whether_o he_o will_v or_o not_o but_o the_o will_n and_o the_o deed_n be_v in_o his_o own_o power_n have_v not_o our_o quake_n
the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n 103_o 2._o they_o deny_v all_o in_o breed_v notion_n of_o a_o god_n and_o of_o honesty_n etc._n etc._n 106_o 3._o they_o say_v a_o pagan_a can_v perform_v all_o inward_a worshipe_n easy_o 461_o 4._o for_o god_n be_v nigh_o to_o help_v he_o 461_o 14._o of_o enthusiasm_n 1._o they_o plead_v for_o immediate_a revelation_n as_o necessary_a in_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n 19_o etc._n etc._n 2._o they_o confound_v these_o revelation_n with_o the_o gracious_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n 20_o 21_o 80_o 3._o they_o succeed_v to_o the_o old_a enthusiast_n 22_o 4._o they_o prefer_v their_o enthusiasm_n to_o scripture_n 57_o 15._o of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o they_o turn_v the_o history_n of_o christ_n death_n &_o resurrection_n into_o allegory_n 11_o 2._o they_o wild_o describe_v it_o 11_o 3._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o necessary_a with_o they_o 244_o 4._o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o more_o advantage_n to_o be_v have_v by_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n then_o by_o the_o history_n of_o other_o saint_n 244_o 5._o they_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o inward_a power_n and_o virtue_n that_o be_v in_o every_o creature_n 259_o 6._o they_o call_v every_o thing_n the_o gospel_n that_o reveal_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n 260_o 7._o they_o plead_v for_o a_o universal_a gospel_n 267_o 16._o of_o the_o light_n within_o 1._o they_o make_v the_o light_n within_o their_o only_a guide_n 11_o 2._o they_o prefer_v it_o to_o the_o scripture_n 59_o 3._o they_o make_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o depend_v upon_o it_o 59_o 4._o they_o make_v it_o the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n 60_o 85_o 5._o they_o call_v it_o christ_n god_n the_o divine_a essence_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n 92_o 6._o they_o call_v it_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n 228_o 230_o 7._o and_o the_o omnipresence_n of_o god_n 228_o 8._o they_o call_v it_o damnable_a heresy_n to_o deny_v the_o worship_v of_o it_o 228_o 9_o they_o call_v it_o a_o measure_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o god_n and_o god_n father_n son_n and_o h._n ghost_n 228_o 10._o they_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n ibid._n 11._o they_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o creature_n 228_o 12._o it_o be_v a_o teacher_n beyond_o the_o scripture_n 229_o 13._o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o grace_n and_o gift_n and_o what_o not_o 229_o 14._o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a heavenly_a invisible_a principle_n the_o vehicle_n of_o god_n in_o which_o god_n dwell_v as_o father_n son_n and_o h._n ghost_n 230_o 231_o 233_o 15._o it_o be_v a_o instrument_n of_o god_n 230_o 16._o it_o be_v a_o divine_a &_o glorious_a life_n 231_o 17._o it_o invit_v all_o man_n to_o good_a 232_o 18._o it_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n 233_o 19_o it_o bear_v witness_n against_o all_o evil_a 234_o 20._o it_o can_v be_v crucify_v and_o exstinguish_v 234_o 21._o where_o it_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n be_v involve_v 235_o 22._o where_o it_o be_v resist_v god_n be_v resist_v 235_o 23._o from_o it_o be_v christ_n form_v in_o the_o soul_n 236_o 237_o 24._o all_o man_n be_v command_v to_o believe_v in_o and_o obey_v this_o light_n 238_o 257_o 25._o it_o deliver_v from_o all_o sin_n 238_o 26._o they_o call_v it_o a_o substance_n 240_o 27._o they_o call_v it_o the_o sure_a mercy_n of_o david_n a_o leader_n &_o a_o commander_n 264_o 28._o and_o that_o word_n by_o which_o faith_n come_v 264_o 265_o 29._o and_o the_o fire_n and_o hammer_v speak_v of_o jer._n 23_o 29._o 264_o 266_o 30._o they_o say_v by_o it_o god_n see_v the_o thought_n of_o man_n 264_o 31._o they_o say_v the_o illumination_n hereof_o when_o receive_v become_v a_o holy_a birth_n etc._n etc._n produce_v righteousness_n &c_n &c_n 296_o 32._o all_o may_v confident_o appear_v before_o god_n who_o harken_v to_o the_o light_n and_o be_v thereby_o renew_v 324_o 33._o they_o say_v the_o light_n manifest_v sin_n and_o nakedness_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 489_o 34._o this_o alone_a search_v the_o heart_n and_o by_o it_o alone_a god_n manifest_v himself_o and_o save_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v &_o man_n see_v their_o own_o face_n 548_o 35._o it_o can_v forgive_v sin_n and_o make_v new_a creature_n 551_o 36._o it_o be_v the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n the_o mediator_n which_o humble_v himself_o to_o the_o cross_n 551_o 37._o they_o expect_v no_o justification_n or_o salvation_n but_o by_o this_o light_n 551_o 38._o hereby_o they_o come_v to_o know_v christ_n reveal_v in_o they_o 552_o 39_o who_o seek_v christ_n any_o where_o else_o but_o in_o this_o light_n seek_v dream_n and_o night_n vision_n and_o spend_v their_o time_n in_o slumber_v and_o dream_v 552_o 40._o by_o own_v and_o obey_v it_o they_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n 552_o 41._o this_o christ_n within_o suffer_v &_o his_o suffering_n be_v satisfactory_a wherever_o 552_o 42._o they_o speak_v of_o kill_v the_o just_a one_o within_o we_o &_o of_o his_o rise_n again_o 552_o 17._o of_o the_o seed_n 1._o they_o talk_v of_o a_o seed_n which_o they_o call_v a_o measure_n of_o god_n christ_n the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n 95_o 100_o 2._o they_o talk_v of_o its_o be_v wound_v 247_o 3._o they_o call_v it_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n 278_o 4._o they_o say_v it_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o earthy_a part_n of_o every_o man_n heart_n and_o that_o herein_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o man_n in_o the_o embryo_n 279_o 5._o as_o this_o small_a seed_n of_o righteousness_n say_v they_o arise_v and_o be_v suffer_v to_o come_v to_o the_o birth_n that_o new_a substantial_a birth_n be_v natural_o feed_v with_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n 489_o 18._o of_o reprobation_n 1._o they_o deny_v all_o absolute_a reprobation_n 133._o etc._n etc._n 2._o they_o miserable_o mistake_v the_o orthodox_n judgement_n hereanent_fw-la 143_o 144_o 3._o in_o exaggerate_v the_o matter_n of_o reprobation_n they_o belch_v out_o against_o god_n 254._o etc._n etc._n 19_o of_o grace_n 1._o they_o deny_v faith_n and_o repentance_n to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 153_o 2._o they_o deny_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o conversion_n take_v away_o the_o resistance_n of_o the_o heart_n 273_o 3._o they_o imagine_v the_o grace_n of_o conversion_n to_o be_v as_o physic_n which_o a_o man_n may_v hinder_v to_o operat_fw-la 273_o 4._o they_o imagine_v that_o god_n put_v all_o some_o way_n out_o of_o the_o pit_n of_o misery_n and_o thereafter_o let_v such_o fall_n again_o as_o spurn_v and_o resist_v 275_o 5._o they_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n make_v any_o real_a change_n of_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o man_n or_o give_v a_o new_a heart_n 276_o 20._o of_o universal_a grace_n 1._o they_o say_v god_n have_v grant_v to_o all_o man_n schythian_o and_o barbarian_n a_o day_n of_o visitation_n wherein_o they_o may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o will_v 212_o 214._o etc._n etc._n 2._o and_o that_o god_n offer_v remission_n and_o salvation_n to_o all_o upon_o condition_n of_o non-refusal_n 249_o 3._o they_o plead_v for_o sufficient_a grace_n to_o all_o 269_o 4._o they_o say_v heathen_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v save_v 282_o 5._o and_o that_o paul_n rom._n 3._o prove_v that_o the_o heathen_n be_v save_v by_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n 289_o 6._o they_o say_v the_o heathen_n have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n though_o not_o under_o that_o denomination_n 290_o 7._o and_o that_o because_o they_o speak_v of_o wisdom_n which_o be_v one_o of_o christ_n name_n 291_o 8._o they_o grant_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o some_o adult_n person_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n 302_o 9_o every_o man_n have_v sufficiency_n of_o influence_n for_o prayer_n till_o his_o day_n of_o visitation_n pass_v say_v they_o 454_o 10._o every_o man_n have_v that_o which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n 546_o 21._o of_o universal_a redemption_n 1._o they_o plead_v for_o universal_a redemption_n 157._o etc._n etc._n 22._o of_o salvation_n they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n after_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n be_v end_v 215_o 2._o and_o that_o god_n give_v to_o every_o man_n a_o certain_a measure_n of_o grace_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n 226_o etc._n etc._n 23._o of_o christ_n satisfaction_n 1._o they_o speak_v not_o distinct_o of_o christ_n satisfaction_n 242_o 2._o they_o vilify_v its_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n 243_o 3._o they_o say_v the_o outward_a blood_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o vail_n can_v cleanse_v 295_o 4._o they_o call_v it_o a_o abomination_n to_o say_v that_o god_n punish_v christ_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o
satisfy_v for_o sin_n 296_o 5._o christ_n with_o they_o procure_v remission_n in_o procure_v grace_n whereby_o christ_n be_v form_v within_o 308_o 24._o of_o justification_n 1._o they_o confound_v justification_n with_o sanctification_n 295_o 2._o and_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v as_o we_o be_v sanctify_v 295_o 3._o it_o be_v ridiculous_a and_o worse_o with_o they_o to_o think_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o imputation_n of_o another_o righteousness_n 295_o 4._o yea_o they_o say_v such_o a_o justification_n be_v irrational_a irreligious_a ridiculous_a and_o dangerous_a 296_o 5._o it_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o imputation_n 296_o 6._o yea_o they_o call_v it_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n a_o arm_n of_o corruption_n 296_o 7._o by_o the_o light_n within_o we_o be_v justify_v as_o well_o as_o sanctify_v say_v they_o 297_o 8._o all_o the_o reconciliation_n we_o have_v by_o christ_n be_v that_o we_o be_v make_v capable_a of_o reconciliation_n 302_o 303_o 304_o 308_o 9_o sanctification_n with_o they_o be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n 305_o 311_o 10._o they_o say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o soul_n 316_o 11._o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n of_o grace_n say_v they_o 321_o 12._o what_o righteousness_n say_v they_o christ_n perform_v without_o we_o be_v not_o our_o justification_n nor_o be_v we_o save_v thereby_o 550_o 13._o they_o deny_v all_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n 11_o 25._o of_o perfection_n 1._o they_o say_v work_v do_v by_o grace_n be_v perfect_a 322_o 323_o 2._o they_o plead_v for_o the_o perfection_n of_o saint_n here_o 325._o etc._n etc._n 3._o they_o hold_v a_o perfect_a freedom_n from_o all_o sin_n 325_o 4._o sanctification_n must_v be_v perfect_a because_o say_v they_o it_o be_v christ_n himself_n 326_o 5._o yet_o they_o say_v this_o perfection_n may_v be_v lose_v 332_o 6._o and_o that_o some_o may_v come_v to_o that_o height_n of_o perfection_n that_o they_o can_v sin_v any_o more_o 332_o 26._o of_o perseverance_n 1._o they_o assert_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o saint_n 350._o etc._n etc._n 27._o of_o infallibility_n 1._o they_o plead_v for_o infallibility_n to_o minister_n and_o to_o all_o christian_n 378_o 28._o of_o the_o patriach_n 1._o they_o say_v the_o patriarch_n have_v no_o faith_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o come_v 289_o 29._o of_o the_o church_n 1._o they_o take-in_a under_o the_o church_n all_o who_o obey_v the_o light_n within_o howbeit_o not_o professor_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o christianity_n 361_o 2._o pagan_n turk_n &_o jew_n though_o both_o ignorant_a and_o superstitious_a be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o save_v with_o they_o if_o they_o be_v good_a single_a heart_a man_n 361_o 3._o all_o member_n of_o their_o church_n teach_v 362_o 4._o such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o very_a history_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o save_v 362_o 5._o yet_o member_n of_o particular_a christian_a church_n must_v give_v assent_n and_o credit_n to_o truth_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n 362_o 6._o outward_a profession_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v one_o a_o member_n of_o a_o particular_a congregat_v church_n though_o not_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 364_o 7._o they_o deny_v man_n to_o be_v christian_n by_o birth_n 364_o 8._o they_o say_v none_o can_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n without_o grace_n 379_o 9_o they_o make_v the_o church_n or_o fold_v the_o same_o with_o the_o shepherd_n 545_o 10._o with_o they_o all_o member_n be_v officer_n 10_o 30._o of_o minister_n 1._o they_o say_v the_o light_n receive_v prepare_v constitute_v and_o fournish_v a_o minister_n 365_o 370_o 2._o minister_n must_v be_v call_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o know_v that_o they_o be_v lead_v and_o move_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o his_o inward_a call_v 372_o 3._o the_o power_n and_o life_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o most_o necessary_a qualification_n of_o a_o minister_n 378_o 4._o minister_n must_v have_v no_o learning_n but_o what_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n 283_o 384_o 386_o 5._o they_o will_v have_v minister_n learn_v trade_n whereby_o to_o live_v 396_o 6._o they_o will_v not_o have_v minister_n make_v use_v of_o what_o they_o have_v learn_v or_o read_v in_o their_o sermon_n 438_o 7._o they_o will_v not_o have_v minister_n study_v their_o sermon_n 431_o 441_o 8._o they_o account_v all_o such_o minister_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o letter_n who_o be_v for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n 545_o 31._o of_o the_o ministry_n 1._o they_o say_v all_o thing_n concern_v the_o ministry_n be_v in_o confusion_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n 366_o 2._o they_o be_v against_o the_o ministerial_a office_n 387_o 389_o 3._o they_o deny_v the_o distinct_a office_n and_o officer_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n 388_o 389_o 391_o 4._o they_o account_v all_o the_o office_n &_o officer_n fo●mes_n &_o shadow_n 388_o 5._o and_o to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n &_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n 389_o 6._o they_o make_v the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n common_a to_o all_o 390_o 7._o they_o make_v it_o free_a to_o all_o to_o preach_v in_o public_a when_o move_v by_o the_o spirit_n 393_o 8._o they_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o such_o officer_n as_o evangelist_n 393_o 394_o 9_o they_o say_v apostle_n prophet_n etc._n etc._n be_v but_o distinct_a name_n 394_o 10._o they_o allow_v woman_n to_o preach_v public_o in_o the_o church_n 397_o 32._o of_o ordination_n 33._o they_o deny_v ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 377_o 33._o of_o ordinance_n 1._o they_o deny_v all_o external_a institution_n in_o worshipe_n 381_o 2._o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v a_o precept_n for_o a_o ordinance_n where_o there_o be_v a_o institution_n 491_o 3._o they_o be_v against_o all_o ordinance_n call_v they_o form_n 545_o 4._o they_o deny_v that_o ever_o god_n do_v or_o will_v reveal_v himself_o by_o they_o 545_o 5._o they_o say_v christ_n blot_v they_o out_o and_o they_o must_v not_o be_v touch_v 545_o 6._o to_o seek_v christ_n in_o ordinance_n be_v to_o seek_v the_o live_n among_o the_o dead_a 545_o 546_o 34._o of_o the_o sabbath_n 1._o they_o deny_v the_o lord_n day_n to_o be_v the_o christian_a sabbath_n 412_o 2._o they_o hold_v all_o day_n alike_o 412_o 35._o of_o worship_n 1._o they_o say_v all_o worshipe_n must_v be_v do_v by_o inward_a inspiration_n as_o to_o time_n place_n duration_n 411_o 2._o they_o condemn_v our_o have_v a_o preacher_n to_o preach_v in_o our_o solemn_a worshipe_n 412_o 3._o external_n action_n in_o worshipe_n need_v particular_a influence_n or_o enthusiasm_n 461_o 4._o when_o we_o move_v say_v they_o without_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v the_o unclean_a part_n which_o offer_v to_o god_n which_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v 545_o 36._o of_o the_o quaker_n worshipe_n 1._o they_o have_v no_o preparation_n to_o their_o worshipe_n 412_o 413_o 2._o nor_o do_v they_o begin_v with_o prayer_n 413_o 3._o nor_o do_v they_o make_v any_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o worshipe_n 413_o 5._o in_o their_o worshipe_n they_o unchristian_a and_o unman_n themselves_o 414_o 6._o they_o talk_v of_o god_n power_n transmit_v from_o vessel_n to_o vessel_n whereby_o when_o one_o be_v affect_v all_o be_v affect_v 415_o 7._o they_o lay_v aside_o all_o word_n even_o scripture_n word_n in_o their_o worshipe_n 415_o 8._o then_o they_o must_v introvert_v unto_o the_o inward_a principle_n within_o they_o as_o unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a doctor_n 415_o 9_o this_o doctor_n teach_v they_o to_o cease_v from_o their_o own_o word_n and_o action_n &_o to_o feel_v the_o inward_a seed_n of_o life_n &_o thereby_o be_v move_v to_o pray_v prithee_o or_o sing_v 416_o 10._o and_o hence_o come_v a_o flood_n of_o refreshment_n that_o run_v over_o the_o whole_a company_n 416_o 11._o and_o then_o they_o need_v neither_o baptism_n nor_o the_o lord_n supper_n 417_o 12._o if_o one_o present_v be_v not_o introvert_v if_o the_o power_n be_v a_o little_a raise_v in_o the_o assembly_n he_o be_v present_o lay_v hold_v on_o and_o this_o power_n warm_v he_o as_o fire_n warm_v a_o man_n 417_o 13._o if_o any_o present_a wander_v in_o their_o imagination_n one_o in_o who_o the_o life_n be_v raise_v will_v feel_v a_o travel_a woman_n pain_n for_o they_o and_o they_o will_v be_v prick_v secret_o though_o nothing_o be_v speak_v 417_o 14._o yea_o if_o a_o stranger_n come_v to_o gaze_v &_o mock_v he_o be_v so_o terrify_v at_o the_o sight_n that_o if_o his_o day_n of_o visitation_n be_v not_o past_a he_o become_v a_o convert_n 418_o 15._o in_o the_o first_o place_n they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v silent_a
perceive_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o most_o clear_a mathematic_a demonstration_n can_v he_o do_v the_o like_a as_o to_o his_o sensation_n 35._o the_o part_a argument_n which_o he_o seat_v down_o in_o the_o last_o paragraph_n be_v sufficient_a so_o he_o think_v to_o end_v the_o whole_a debate_n thus_o he_o frame_v it_o that_o unto_o which_o all_o professor_n of_o christianity_n of_o whatsoever_o kind_n do_v at_o last_o recurre_v and_o because_o of_o which_o all_o other_o ground_n be_v commend_v and_o account_v worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v must_v of_o necessity_n be_v the_o only_o most_o certane_v and_o immovable_a ground_n of_o all_o christian_a faith_n but_o the_o inward_a immediate_a objective_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n now_o not_o to_o carp_v at_o the_o eccentrickness_n of_o this_o conclusion_n for_o many_o such_o thing_n must_v be_v pass_v over_o this_o confirmation_n of_o the_o minor_a as_o to_o protestant_n with_o who_o he_o very_o charitable_o join_v socinian_n who_o i_o can_v account_v christian_n notwihstand_v of_o all_o the_o agreement_n betwixt_o he_o and_o they_o destroy_v the_o whole_a argument_n and_o render_v it_o useless_a as_o to_o his_o purpose_n and_o so_o conclude_v only_o his_o folly_n and_o ignorance_n if_o we_o inquire_v say_v he_o at_o they_o why_o they_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o a_o rule_n they_o answer_v because_o in_o they_o be_v declare_v the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v reveal_v immediate_o and_o objective_o by_o the_o spirit_n unto_o holy_a man_n can_v any_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n infer_v hence_o that_o protestant_n be_v for_o the_o uncertanty_n of_o all_o objective_n and_o immediate_a revelation_n even_o of_o that_o which_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n have_v when_o act_v by_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n to_o pen_n scripture_n as_o he_o insinuate_v in_o the_o follow_a word_n or_o can_v any_o man_n of_o common_a judgement_n see_v what_o this_o concession_n and_o necessary_a foundation_n of_o protestant_n can_v make_v for_o the_o false_o pretend_a immediat_n and_o objective_a revelation_n which_o quaker_n boast_v off_o nay_o do_v not_o protestant_n their_n owne_v of_o this_o solid_a and_o immovable_a foundation_n sufficient_o warrant_v their_o reject_v of_o his_o delusion_n yea_o and_o necessitate_v they_o thereunto_o if_o they_o will_v be_v true_a to_o their_o principle_n 36._o as_o for_o his_o monitory_a conclusion_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o vindication_n of_o this_o his_o second_o thesis_n wherein_o he_o give_v we_o a_o full_a foretaste_n of_o his_o pelagianism_n because_o we_o will_v have_v occasion_n sufficient_a to_o speak_v to_o this_o matter_n afterward_o we_o need_v only_o tell_v the_o reader_n what_o he_o say_v here_o his_o discourse_n in_o short_a be_v this_o if_o any_o man_n will_v assent_v to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o divine_a revelation_n though_o at_o present_a he_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o they_o himself_o yet_o he_o must_v know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a privilege_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o at_o length_n shall_v come_v to_o know_v this_o secret_a light_n enlight_v his_o heart_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o by_o relinquish_a of_o sin_n this_o divine_a voice_n in_o the_o heart_n shall_v become_v more_o know_v then_o shall_v he_o feel_v that_o as_o the_o old_a natural_a man_n be_v put_v off_o the_o new_a man_n and_o spiritual_a birth_n shall_v arise_v and_o this_o new_a birth_n have_v spiritual_a sense_n can_v discern_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o let_v every_o man_n attend_v to_o this_o spirit_n in_o the_o little_a revelation_n of_o that_o pure_a light_n which_o at_o first_o reveal_v thing_n more_o notoure_n and_o afterward_o as_o he_o be_v fit_v he_o shall_v receive_v more_o and_o more_o and_o be_v in_o case_n at_o length_n by_o quick_a experience_n to_o refute_v they_o who_o shall_v inquire_v what_o way_n he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o short_a if_o one_o will_v firm_o believe_v that_o nature_n dim_a light_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o he_o and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o this_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o the_o teach_n thereof_o and_o thereby_o shun_v outward_a act_n of_o sin_n and_o put_v on_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n and_o more_o and_o more_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o this_o delusion_n he_o shall_v at_o length_n arrive_v at_o this_o perfection_n that_o he_o may_v burn_v the_o bible_n and_o with_o confidence_n assert_v that_o he_o be_v act_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n let_v scripture_n and_o common_a sense_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_n what_o they_o will_n what_o a_o extract_n of_o pelagianism_n enthusiasm_n and_o dreadful_a delusion_n be_v here_o every_o know_a person_n may_v see_v chap._n iu._n of_o the_o scripture_n 1._o his_o three_o thesis_n which_o i_o find_v in_o some_o thing_n alter_v and_o more_o clear_o express_v in_o the_o second_o edition_n set_v down_o in_o the_o apology_n than_o be_v in_o the_o single_a sheet_n contain_v his_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n come_v now_o to_o be_v examine_v the_o scripture_n be_v own_v by_o we_o as_o a_o sure_a rule_n whereby_o we_o shall_v try_v the_o spirit_n and_o they_o give_v such_o clear_a and_o manifest_a testimony_n against_o the_o delusion_n and_o bold_a assertion_n of_o the_o quaker_n and_o afford_v we_o full_a and_o sufficient_a ground_n whereupon_o to_o reject_v their_o doctrine_n and_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o impostor_n it_o be_v little_a wonder_n that_o we_o hear_v they_o speak_v so_o base_o of_o these_o scripture_n of_o truth_n as_o we_o do_v mr_n stalham_n in_o his_o reviler_n rebuke_v pag._n 1._o tell_v we_o that_o a_o quaker_n deny_v to_o his_o face_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n or_o at_o least_o not_o to_o all_o not_o to_o wicked_a man_n and_o unbeliever_n no_o not_o condemning_o he_o tell_v we_o also_o pag._n 4._o that_o some_o say_v to_o he_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o witness_n of_o god_n power_n as_o if_o that_o can_v be_v the_o true_a witness_n of_o god_n power_n which_o be_v not_o true_a nor_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n he_o tell_v we_o also_o pag._n 18._o sect_n 2._o that_o francis_n howgil_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v other_o man_n word_n that_o speak_v they_o free_o and_o pag._n 20._o that_o richard_n farnworth_n call_v they_o in_o a_o way_n of_o disparagement_n a_o print_a bible_n so_o pag._n 23._o sect_n 3._o that_o john_n lawson_n say_v we_o have_v nothing_o to_o try_v man_n by_o but_o the_o letter_n the_o bible_n or_o write_v word_n which_o be_v natural_a and_o carnal_a so_o pag._n 244._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o some_o of_o they_o in_o a_o book_n call_v a_o paper_z send_v into_o the_o world_n pag_n 2._o have_v these_o word_n they_o be_v such_o teacher_n as_o tell_v people_n that_o matthew_n mark_n luk_n and_o john_n be_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v but_o the_o letter_n we_o therefore_o do_v deny_v they_o and_o pag._n 250._o he_o cit_v these_o word_n out_o of_o tho._n lawsons_n book_n call_v a_o untaught_a teacher_n pag._n 2._o to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n be_v call_v the_o scripture_n or_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v a_o lie_n if_o this_o man_n do_v not_o approve_v of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a expression_n of_o those_o call_v quaker_n he_o be_v concern_v to_o give_v testimony_n against_o they_o and_o that_o direct_o that_o the_o world_n may_v bear_v witness_n of_o his_o honesty_n but_o we_o know_v what_o account_v the_o old_a &_o n._n england_n libertine_n david_n george_n and_o the_o familist_n with_o who_o this_o man_n and_o the_o rest_n agree_v too_o well_o make_v of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o it_o be_v common_o affirm_v by_o the_o quaker_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o call_v so_o fox_n and_o hubberthorn_n cite_v by_o mr_n hicks_n in_o his_o first_o dialogue_n pag._n 17._o where_o he_o tell_v we_o also_o that_o nailor_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jew_n p._n 22._o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n that_o contend_v for_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v their_o common_a assertion_n and_o that_o main_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n d._n owen_n also_o witness_v this_o in_o his_o exercit_fw-la apol._n pro._n s._n script●r_n adv_n fanaticos_fw-la exerc._n 1_o sect._n 3._o which_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o fanatic_n to_o allege_v for_o i_o find_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o swenckfeldius_n heterodoxy_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la libris_fw-la p._n 27_o 28._o and_o that_o upon_o the_o same_o
and_o presumption_n his_o doctrine_n be_v try_v and_o find_v light_n and_o contradictory_n to_o christ_n his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n yea_o and_o eversive_a of_o all_o christianity_n and_o religion_n we_o grant_v say_v he_o that_o the_o scripture_n give_v ample_a testimony_n to_o the_o chief_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o what_o a_o reproach_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o concession_n contain_v we_o have_v show_v above_o we_o be_v say_v he_o for_o no_o new_a gospel_n but_o for_o new_a revelation_n of_o the_o old_a gospel_n the_o gospel_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n bring_v be_v but_o a_o new_a revelation_n of_o the_o old_a gospel_n and_o no_o new_a gospel_n essential_o different_a from_o the_o old_a dispensation_n thus_o their_o revelation_n may_v be_v as_o new_a and_o as_o far_o different_a from_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o they_o be_v from_o what_o be_v under_o the_o old_a dispensation_n and_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v receive_v with_o the_o same_o faith_n &_o obedience_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v this_o tolerable_a think_v this_o man_n that_o we_o be_v as_o mad_a as_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n be_v be_v it_o know_v to_o he_o we_o will_v hold_v by_o the_o old_a foundation_n christ_n and_o the_o sole_a revelation_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o for_o sad_a experience_n have_v teach_v the_o world_n what_o devilish_a doctrine_n have_v be_v vent_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o new_a revelation_n such_o as_o these_o by_o the_o enthusiast_n at_o munster_n and_o by_o paracelsus_n weigelius_n and_o other_o that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v more_o wife_n at_o once_o that_o the_o eternal_a god_n have_v flesh_n that_o god_n make_v to_o himself_o out_o of_o himself_o a_o wife_n on_o who_o he_o beget_v a_o son_n that_o god_n care_v not_o for_o outward_a sin_n that_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v antichristian_a that_o our_o christ_n be_v the_o antichrist_n and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o mary_n our_o baptism_n be_v a_o profane_a thing_n adamitick_a flesh_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o remission_n hear_v of_o sermon_n and_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n be_v impediment_n of_o regeneration_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o preach_v in_o templos_n hell_n be_v heaven_n and_o heaven_n be_v hell_n and_o both_o be_v one_o what_o think_v he_o of_o these_o and_o of_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o david_n georg_n who_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o moses_n of_o the_o apostle_n yea_o and_o of_o christ_n himself_o be_v imperfect_a and_o unable_a to_o bring_v any_o to_o salvation_n only_o his_o doctrine_n be_v perfect_a and_o efficacious_a for_o that_o end_n that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a christ_n and_o the_o messiah_n bear_v not_o of_o flesh_n but_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n which_o spirit_n of_o christ_n his_o flesh_n be_v annihilate_v be_v whole_o give_v to_o he_o that_o he_o can_v save_v and_o condemn_v &_o that_o he_o shall_v judge_v the_o whole_a world_n at_o the_o last_o day_n that_o he_o be_v great_a than_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o flesh_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o woman_n but_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o spiritual_a christ_n bear_v of_o holy_a ghost_n these_o have_v as_o much_o to_o say_v for_o their_o revelation_n as_o he_o have_v to_o say_v for_o he_o and_o if_o we_o open_v the_o door_n once_o unto_o such_o pretender_n we_o way_n see_v what_o will_v be_v the_o issue_n it_o may_v be_v call_v at_o first_o but_o a_o new_a more_o glorious_a more_o excellent_a revelation_n and_o may_v come_v at_o length_n to_o be_v a_o quite_o overturning_a of_o the_o old_a gospel_n too_o therefore_o we_o judge_v it_o the_o best_a course_n to_o keep_v the_o door_n close_o which_o christ_n have_v shut_v and_o not_o to_o receive_v his_o abomination_n 45._o he_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o compleet_n canon_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o a_o compleet_n canon_n they_o be_v no_o canon_n at_o all_o for_o a_o rule_n and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v regulate_v thereby_o be_v relative_n and_o must_v correspond_v yet_o he_o think_v we_o must_v confess_v what_o he_o say_v to_o be_v true_a and_o why_o so_o because_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n we_o read_v not_o this_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n that_o these_o book_n be_v only_o canonic_a scripture_n but_o this_o be_v no_o new_a revelation_n for_o it_o be_v reveal_v long_o since_o to_o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o and_o to_o other_o papist_n and_o so_o this_o man_n be_v but_o play_v their_o game_n and_o yet_o neither_o he_o nor_o they_o can_v gain_v any_o thing_n for_o this_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v declare_v by_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o so_o need_v not_o be_v set_v down_o in_o so_o many_o word_n the_o character_n of_o divine_a light_n and_o power_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o scripture_n do_v discriminate_a they_o from_o all_o other_o and_o so_o declare_v themselves_o and_o themselves_o only_o to_o be_v the_o word_n and_o law_n of_o god_n and_o more_o be_v needless_a for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o rule_n to_o itself_o but_o to_o other_o thing_n no_o discipline_n or_o science_n prove_v their_o own_o principle_n act●_n of_o parliament_n need_v not_o say_v that_o such_o a_o book_n contain_v so_o many_o act_n or_o law_n of_o this_o or_o that_o nature_n be_v the_o true_a act_n of_o parliament_n when_o a_o husband_n write_v ten_o letter_n to_o his_o wife_n he_o need_v not_o say_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o ten_o letter_n be_v he_o for_o she_o know_v that_o ten_o be_v his_o by_o his_o own_o hand_n write_v and_o other_o indicia_fw-la which_o agree_v to_o no_o other_o letter_n and_o so_o discriminate_a they_o from_o all_o other_o and_o the_o numerus_fw-la numerans_fw-la be_v sufficient_o express_v by_o the_o numerus_fw-la nu●eratus_fw-la this_o man_n possible_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v five_o finger_n in_o one_o of_o his_o hand_n because_o he_o no_o where_o see_v it_o write_v on_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o have_v five_o finger_n in_o one_o hand_n and_o by_o this_o he_o may_v understand_v how_o we_o can_v prove_v this_o or_o that_o book_n in_o scripture_n to_o be_v scripture_n without_o flee_v to_o his_o senseless_a and_o imaginary_a shift_n as_o we_o have_v show_v above_o when_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n chap._n v._o of_o man_n natural_a state_n 1._o we_o come_v now_o to_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n hold_v forth_o in_o the_o 4_o thesis_n which_o though_o i_o find_v a_o little_a more_o clear_o express_v as_o to_o the_o latin_a in_o the_o second_o edition_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o yet_o i_o find_v it_o not_o help_v as_o to_o the_o matter_n so_o that_o still_o i_o find_v several_a mystery_n wrap_v up_o in_o his_o word_n which_o will_v not_o without_o some_o difficulty_n be_v unridle_v for_o after_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o that_o sack_n of_o the_o quaker_n who_o speak_v ordinary_o in_o a_o dialect_n peculiar_a to_o themselves_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o thesis_n be_v very_o enigmatical_a and_o in_o all_o his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o thesis_n in_o his_o apology_n he_o speak_v nothing_o that_o can_v contribute_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o clear_n of_o his_o mean_v to_o we_o who_o be_v not_o much_o acquant_v with_o his_o mystery_n only_o he_o enlarge_v himself_o on_o two_o main_a head_n of_o which_o we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o and_o though_o he_o can_v not_o be_v offend_v if_o we_o shall_v only_o examine_v his_o doctrine_n as_o to_o these_o two_o head_n leave_v the_o rest_n which_o he_o short_o touch_v in_o his_o thesis_n yet_o ●or_a the_o reader_n satisfaction_n we_o must_v take_v some_o notice_n of_o what_o he_o say_v 2._o pass_v that_o insufficient_a division_n of_o mankind_n or_o the_o posterity_n of_o adam_n which_o he_o make_v when_o he_o say_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n whereby_o he_o exclude_v from_o this_o race_n of_o adam_n all_o that_o live_v before_o this_o distinction_n begin_v to_o take_v place_n that_o be_v all_o that_o live_v before_o abraham_n isaac_n &_o jacob_n the_o posterity_n of_o who_o complex_o consider_v only_o do_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o jew_n and_o that_o not_o so_o early_o for_o the_o first_o mention_n we_o have_v of_o the_o word_n in_o scripture_n be_v esther_n 2_o 5._o &_o 2_o king_n 16_o 6._o and_o all_o those_o who_o live_v before_o this_o issue_n appear_v or_o be_v know_v as_o such_o can_v not_o be_v call_v heathen_n see_v some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n i_o take_v notice_n that_o he_o acknowledge_v and_o assert_v that_o all_o mankind_n be_v fall_v degenerate_v and_o dead_a but_o how_o or_o upon_o what_o occasion_n
and_o yet_o behold_v the_o righteous_a god_n can_v be_v acquit_v in_o that_o which_o be_v every_o way_n more_o justifiable_a though_o he_o have_v absolute_a dominion_n over_o we_o and_o may_v dispose_v of_o we_o as_o he_o will_v which_o no_o man_n have_v over_o another_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o dissatisfaction_n with_o god_n in_o all_o his_o way_n be_v a_o argument_n beyond_o all_o denial_n of_o our_o rebellious_a natural_a inbred_a corruption_n and_o wickedness_n of_o heart_n what_o will_v they_o not_o have_v say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v goodness_n and_o equity_n both_o in_o god_n if_o adam_n have_v stand_v to_o have_v make_v we_o all_o partaker_n of_o the_o benefit_n thereof_o and_o shall_v it_o now_o be_v against_o both_o goodness_n &_o equity_n if_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o fall_n we_o be_v deprive_v thereof_o and_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o evil_n threaten_v what_o unequal_a deal_n be_v this_o in_o fine_a this_o be_v the_o old_a c●ant_n of_o the_o palagian_o as_o vossius_fw-la show_v we_o hist._n pelag._n pag._n 206._o and_o what_o augustine_n reply_v he_o way_n see_v ibid._n pag._n 20●_n 13._o he_o add_v a_o rhapsody_n of_o nonsense_n tell_v his_o reader_n our_o opinion_n flow_v from_o ourselves_o l●ve_v because_o we_o maintain_v a_o absolute_a decree_n of_o election_n for_o ourselves_o and_o we_o and_o so_o care_v not_o to_o send_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o hell_n and_o leave_v they_o into_o inextricable_a difficulty_n the_o read_n of_o wh●ch_n may_v indeed_o excite_v any_o man_n of_o understanding_n to_o commiserate_v this_o man_n case_n who_o be_v thus_o so_o transport_v with_o passion_n as_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o be_v say_v only_o we_o see_v that_o he_o mu●t_v spew_v out_o his_o gall_n against_o the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n of_o election_n before_o the_o fit_a time_n come_v but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o t●e_v right_a place_n of_o speak_v to_o this_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n he_o there_fw-mi not_o meddle_v with_o election_n but_o content_v himself_o with_o reprobation_n but_o what_o a_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o corrupt_a self_n love_n and_o pride_n against_o god_n be_v in_o his_o pelagian_a heresy_n he_o be_v blind_a that_o see_v not_o these_o quaker_n with_o other_o pelagian_n will_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o as_o little_a as_o may_v be_v and_o therefore_o so_o frame_v their_o doctrine_n that_o themselves_o and_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v have_v all_o the_o praise_n of_o their_o salvation_n as_o we_o will_v have_v occasion_n frequent_o to_o show_v ere_o all_o be_v do_v when_o he_o have_v delude_v himself_o and_o other_o quaker_n and_o make_v some_o other_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v no_o original_a sin_n to_o mourn_v for_o and_o thereby_o have_v bring_v they_o under_o the_o dominion_n of_o satan_n more_o than_o before_o have_v he_o do_v they_o any_o good_a service_n be_v it_o good_a service_n to_o poor_a soul_n to_o hoodwink_v they_o that_o they_o may_v post_v to_o the_o pit_n wit●_n a_o lie_n in_o their_o right_a hand_n woe_n i_o say_v and_o thrice_o woe_n to_o such_o as_o drink-in_a this_o man_n doctrine_n and_o live_v and_o die_v according_o 14_o thereafter_o he_o be_v better_a please_v with_o papist_n who_o allow_v a_o limbus_n to_o the_o infant_n die_v without_o baptism_n than_o w●th_v we_o but_o we_o must_v be_v satisfy_v that_o he_o look_v more_o warm_o to_o his_o old_a friend_n the_o papist_n among_o who_o he_o drank-in_a no_o doubt_n much_o of_o that_o prejudice_n which_o now_o he_o be_v please_v to_o vomit_v fo●th_n as_o quaker_n rather_o than_o as_o a_o papist_n and_o as_o to_o this_o particular_a whereupon_o now_o we_o be_v his_o opinion_n will_v accord_v better_o with_o the_o papist_n than_o with_o we_o for_o bellarm._n will_v not_o have_v concupiscence_n to_o be_v own_v as_o sin_v formal_o but_o only_o original_o and_o effective_o or_o terminative_o and_o they_o say_v that_o adam_n be_v create_v in_o puris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la which_o natural_n remain_v whole_a and_o entire_a as_o yet_o and_o will_v not_o this_o quaker_n grant_v all_o this_o as_o to_z infant_n nay_o he_o agree_v well_o with_o the_o error_n of_o albert-pighius_a who_o will_v have_v no_o sin_n propagate_v to_o we_o from_o adam_n and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o we_o when_o new_o bear_v but_o what_o be_v good_a and_o that_o death_n come_v not_o upon_o infant_n because_o of_o sin_n but_o flow_v from_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o body_n but_o whether_o he_o will_v say_v with_o he_o that_o because_o of_o adam_n sin_n all_o his_o posterity_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o heaven_n though_o not_o obnoxious_a to_o eternal_a death_n i_o know_v not_o it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v allow_v they_o a_o limbus_n or_o else_o make_v they_o all_o sure_a of_o heaven_n if_o he_o will_v grant_v a_o heaven_n to_o any_o but_o how_o come_v they_o thither_o see_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o christ_n all_o tha●_n come_v to_o heaven_n must_v be_v behold_v to_o christ_n the_o redeemer_n and_o hold_v their_o crown_n of_o he_o but_o this_o quaker_n religion_n will_v teach_v old_a person_n let_v be_v infant_n to_o be_v little_o behold_v to_o christ_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v 15._o he_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o tell_v we_o next_o that_o our_o opinion_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n because_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 4_o 15_o that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n and_o 5_o 13._o but_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v when_o there_o be_v no_o law_n and_o he_o like_o a_o man_n prove_v that_o infant_n be_v under_o no_o law_n but_o be_v the_o man_n such_o a_o stranger_n to_o the_o common_a practice_n among_o man_n who_o forfeit_v the_o child_n yea_o infant_n yea_o such_o as_o be_v not_o bear_v with_o their_o father_n for_o great_a crime_n and_o yet_o they_o know_v that_o infant_n be_v not_o obnoxious_a to_o their_o law_n especial_o if_o as_o yet_o unborn_a but_o our_o plain_a answer_n be_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o mankind_n be_v under_o the_o law_n propose_v unto_o adam_n as_o the_o head_n and_o when_o he_o as_o the_o head_n and_o representative_a break_v that_o law_n the_o whole_a nature_n of_o mankind_n become_v guilty_a and_o consequent_o every_o infant_n become_v guilty_a when_o they_o partake_v of_o that_o guilty_a nature_n and_o that_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o all_o the_o posterity_n of_o ad●m_n the_o apostle_n express_o assert_n in_o the_o last_o place_n cite_v viz._n rome_n 5_o 12_o 13_o 14._o even_o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o very_a objection_n which_o he_o proleptical_o bringeth-in_a there_o as_o the_o cohesion_n clear_v and_o we_o shall_v evince_v afterward_o 16._o his_o last_o reason_n be_v from_o ezechiel_n 18_o 20._o which_o socinian_n also_o urge_v and_o it_o receive_v a_o quick_a dispatch_n for_o he_o himself_o must_v loose_v this_o doubt_n if_o there_o b●_n any_o as_o well_o as_o we_o for_o he_o say_v before_o that_o god_n punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n on_o the_o child_n when_o guilty_a of_o actual_a sin_n whereby_o they_o homologate_v their_o father_n wickedness_n and_o ezechiel_n do_v plain_o and_o frequent_o enough_o make_v it_o out_o ●hat_n t●ese_n child_n be_v as_o wicked_a as_o their_o father_n if_o not_o more_o and_o so_o the_o lord_n may_v according_a to_o this_o man_n be_v own_o concession_n visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o their_o father_n upon_o they_o but_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n be_v clear_o this_o that_o so_o little_a ground_n have_v these_o people_n to_o alleige_v that_o they_o be_v innocent_a and_o that_o god_n have_v no_o quarrel_n against_o they_o but_o for_o their_o father_n transgression_n so_o that_o their_o father_n do_v eat_v th●_n sour_a ●rapes_n and_o their_o tooth_n be_v therefore_o set_v on_o edge_n though_o they_o themselves_o do_v eat_v no_o sour_a grape_n be_v innocent_a that_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o lord_n tell_v they_o by_o the_o prophet_n that_o though_o he_o shall_v not_o visit_v one_o iniquity_n of_o their_o father_n upon_o they_o as_o h●_n may_v do_v in_o justice_n and_o have_v one_o with_o other_o but_o shall_v follow_v a_o way_n with_o they_o more_o suitable_a to_o their_o own_o mind_n viz._n only_o take_v notice_n of_o their_o own_o guilt_n personal_a yet_o they_o can_v not_o escape_v because_o their_o own_o personal_a iniquity_n be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a this_o i_o say_v be_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n it_o be_v obvious_a how_o impertinent_a it_o be_v for_o he_o here_o to_o alleidge_n it_o and_o beside_o let_v he_o make_v of_o it_o what_o he_o will_v it_o can_v reach_v we_o for_o we_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o this_o original_a sin_n be_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o another_o person_n as_o adam_n after_o sin_n be_v
and_o have_v ●othing_v of_o it_o impute_v unto_o they_o which_o though_o this_o man_n may_v account_v no_o way_n absurd_a yet_o all_o orthoeox_n christian_n will_v be_v of_o another_o mind_n 5_o he_o speak_v dubious_o concern_v the_o import_n of_o these_o two_o word_n and_o know_v not_o whether_o their_o meaning_n be_v by_o which_o occasion_n or_o in_o which_o death_n and_o we_o have_v see_v that_o the_o meaning_n can_v be_v by_o which_o occasion_n and_o it_o will_v further_o appear_v from_o this_o that_o adam_n sin_n can_v be_v no_o occasion_n to_o such_o as_o never_o hear_v of_o it_o and_o our_o near_a parent_n sin_n shall_v be_v a_o great_a occasion_n and_o further_o what_o can_v pawles_n mention_v a_o occasion_n contribute_v to_o his_o design_n 6._o paul_n assert_n that_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o man_n and_o give_v this_o as_o a_o ground_n thereof_o that_o all_o man_n have_v sin_v but_o this_o man_n pervert_v the_o apostle_n word_n and_o meaning_n and_o make_v the_o apostle_n speak_v thus_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o man_n because_o all_o man_n will_v sin_v actual_o when_o they_o become_v capable_a 7._o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o man_n and_o reign_v even_o over_o infant_n and_o so_o suppose_v that_o infant_n have_v sin_v otherways_o his_o argument_n vers_fw-la 12._o have_v be_v of_o no_o value_n for_o the_o instance_n of_o infant_n who_o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n have_v destroy_v the_o apostle_n reason_v if_o they_o bid_v not_o be_v include_v under_o all_o man_n 8._o he_o be_v angry_a at_o the_o orthodox_n as_o we_o s●all_v hear_v afterward_o for_o restrict_v the_o particle_n all_o or_o the_o word_n all_o man_n though_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o context_n but_o here_o he_o exclude_v a_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a scope_n and_o design_n of_o the_o text_n yea_o and_o to_o the_o apostle_n express_v include_v of_o infant_n and_o make_v use_n of_o their_o case_n as_o a_o confirmation_n of_o his_o point_n 9_o if_o he_o exclude_v infant_n from_o this_o sin_n he_o must_v exclude_v they_o also_o from_o all_o benefit_n in_o christ_n obedience_n and_o then_o where_o be_v his_o universal_a redemption_n and_o his_o universal_a grace_n whereof_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o follow_a thesis_n 10_o that_o infant_n be_v capable_a of_o sin_v in_o their_o head_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o head_n &_o this_o the_o apostle_n prove_v from_o their_o death_n and_o from_o death_n reigne_v over_o they_o 11._o but_o say_v he_o infant_n be_v under_o no_o law_n but_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o contrare_fw-la viz._n that_o there_o be_v both_o sin_n and_o law_n before_o moses_n day_n because_o death_n reign_v even_o over_o infant_n and_o consequent_o that_o infant_n be_v under_o sin_n and_o therefore_o also_o under_o a_o law_n for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n but_o this_o be_v the_o law_n give_v to_o adam_n as_o head_z of_o mankind_n which_o law_n all_o transgress_v when_o adam_n transgress_v because_o the_o whole_a nature_n transgress_v it_o adam_n represent_v all_o as_o their_o natural_a root_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o covenant_n in_o which_o he_o stand_v and_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o this_o man_n pervert_v and_o invert_v the_o word_n and_o argument_n and_o scope_n and_o all_o of_o the_o apostle_n 12_o if_o death_n be_v inflict_v on_o old_a person_n because_o of_o their_o actual_a sin_n wherefore_o be_v death_n inflict_v upon_o infant_n sure_o the_o apostle_n make_v no_o distinction_n of_o death_n nor_o do_v he_o speak_v of_o distinct_a cause_n of_o death_n but_o only_o mention_v a_o universal_a cause_n of_o a_o universal_a effect_n sin_v the_o cause_n and_o death_n the_o effect_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o effect_n come_v upon_o infant_n the_o cause_n must_v also_o come_v upon_o they_o or_o the_o apostle_n argue_v very_o loose_o and_o he_o must_v impute_v cruelty_n &_o injustice_n to_o his_o maker_n 13._o this_o addition_n of_o he_o to_o the_o text_n viz._n who_o be_v capable_a of_o sin_v be_v the_o same_o that_o castalio_n make_v say_v these_o to_o wit_n who_o in_o regaird_a of_o age_n can_v have_v sin_v and_o in_o this_o he_o be_v no_o less_o bold_a with_o the_o text_n than_o our_o quaker_n be_v for_o as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a it_o be_v not_o all_o these_o only_a that_o die_v but_o even_o such_o as_o come_v not_o to_o that_o age_n and_o the_o apostle_n always_o speak_v of_o death_n as_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n and_o when_o he_o here_o say_v of_o infant_n that_o they_o sin_v not_o after_o the_o similitude_n of_o adam_n transgression_n he_o clear_o intimate_v that_o they_o sin_v some_o other_o way_n viz._n in_o adam_n which_o also_o the_o 19_o verse_n manifest_o prove_v 20._o he_o take_v notice_n next_o of_o our_o argument_n from_o psal._n 51_o 5._o behold_v i_o be_v shape_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n do_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o where_o the_o psalmist_n be_v exaggerate_v his_o iniquity_n before_o the_o lord_n as_o all_o true_a penitent_n will_v do_v trace_v his_o sin_n to_o the_o very_a spring_n and_o fountain_n as_o to_o he_o viz._n that_o original_a corruption_n which_o he_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n with_o he_o and_o show_v that_o even_o while_o he_o be_v a_o form_n and_o warm_v as_o the_o word_n import_v in_o the_o womb_n this_o corruption_n do_v adhere_v to_o he_o so_o that_o the_o very_a mass_n out_o of_o which_o he_o be_v frame_v be_v corrupt_v and_o what_o great_a proof_n can_v we_o desire_v of_o the_o originated_a part_n of_o this_o original_a sin_n than_o be_v here_o the_o ancient_a father_n make_v use_v of_o this_o passage_n for_o the_o same_o end_n as_o vossius_fw-la show_v we_o hist._n pelag._n pag._n 144.145_o and_o some_o jew_n such_o as_o aben_n ezra_n &_o sal._n jarchi_n expound_v it_o of_o innate_a concupiscence_n now_o what_o say_v this_o quaker_n to_o this_o he_o can_v see_v our_o inference_n and_o why_o so_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o say_v he_o that_o this_o iniquity_n and_o sin_n be_v rath●r_o ascribe_v to_o the_o parent_n than_o to_o the_o infant_n for_o he_o say_v in_o sin_n do_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o not_o my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o sin_v ans._n be_v not_o this_o a_o quick_a observation_n and_o worthy_a of_o a_o quaker_n but_o the_o misery_n be_v it_o quite_o cross_v david_n design_n this_o man_n must_v think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a argument_n of_o david_n sorrow_n and_o repentance_n to_o lay_v iniquity_n upon_o his_o parent_n now_o in_o all_o appearance_n dead_a but_o i_o shall_v look_v upon_o this_o as_o no_o argument_n of_o a_o true_a penitent_a heart_n what_o can_v his_o upbraid_v of_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n after_o this_o manner_n contribute_v to_o the_o aggravate_v of_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o that_o this_o be_v david_n design_n i_o think_v this_o quaker_n will_v not_o deny_v if_o he_o but_o look_v upon_o the_o place_n and_o read_v over_o the_o psalm_n or_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o be_v not_o david_n about_o the_o confess_v of_o his_o own_o sin_n read_v the_o title_n of_o the_o psalm_n &_o the_o preecee_a verse_n and_o see_v be_v he_o not_o seek_v pardon_n and_o remission_n of_o his_o own_o sin_n or_o shall_v we_o suppose_v that_o he_o be_v pray_v for_o remission_n to_o the_o dead_a all_o confession_n of_o sin_n to_o god_n be_v in_o reference_n to_o remission_n and_o if_o david_n speak_v here_o only_o of_o his_o parent_n sin_n he_o be_v tacit_o seek_v remission_n if_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o parent_n sin_n in_o beget_v and_o warm_v he_o in_o the_o womb_n it_o must_v be_v as_o include_v himself_o at_o least_o as_o share_v thereof_o and_o this_o will_v prove_v that_o david_n have_v sin_n upon_o he_o from_o his_o very_a conception_n and_o by_o his_o answer_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v marriage_n duty_n unlawful_a contrare_fw-la to_o 1_o cor._n 7_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o heb._n 13_o 4._o he_o add_v another_o answer_n thus_o such_o a_o interpretation_n will_v contradict_v the_o scripture_n former_o cite_v while_o it_o make_v infant_n to_o he_o hurt_v by_o their_o immediate_a parent_n sin_n and_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n here_o of_o adam_n answ._n i_o do_v not_o prove_v hence_o that_o david_n be_v guilty_a of_o his_o immediate_a parent_n sin_n but_o that_o original_a contagion_n do_v so_o cleave_v to_o every_o ordinary_a infant_n unless_o we_o can_v suppose_v some_o singular_a thing_n in_o david_n without_o all_o ground_n that_o in_o his_o very_a warm_n in_o his_o mother_n womb_n he_o be_v corrupt_v and_o albeit_o david_n make_v no_o mention_n here_o of_o adam_n the_o
nither_o can_v it_o advantage_v his_o charity_n to_o find_v it_o upon_o a_o untruth_n and_o that_o his_o charity_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v found_v upon_o a_o untruth_n we_o have_v see_v already_o and_o shall_v yet_o make_v it_o more_o evident_a he_o suppose_v that_o when_o infant_n perish_v because_o of_o original_a sin_n they_o perish_v for_o no_o ●in_a of_o their_o own_o but_o only_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o another_o of_o adam_n but_o how_o groundless_a this_o mistake_n be_v we_o have_v see_v and_o we_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v the_o proper_a sin_n of_o humane_a nature_n and_o so_o be_v traduce_v from_o adam_n to_o all_o that_o come_v of_o he_o by_o ordinary_a generation_n and_o so_o partake_v of_o humane_a nature_n 23._o in_o end_n he_o say_v that_o zuinglius_fw-la do_v deny_v and_o refute_v our_o opinion_n but_o all_o his_o proof_n be_v from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o have_v not_o much_o credit_n with_o we_o whatever_o it_o have_v with_o he_o we_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o take_v bullingers_n testimony_n decad._n 3_o serm._n 10_o and_o cont_n anabapt_v lib._n 1._o c._n 12_o &_o gualter_n in_o apol._n pro_fw-la zuinglio_n &_o operib_n ejus_fw-la than_o either_o beauty_n or_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nay_o zuinglius_fw-la declare_v himself_o abundant_o for_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o conference_n with_o luther_n at_o marpurg_n where_o these_o word_n be_v we_o believe_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v inborn_a in_o every_o man_n from_o adam_n and_o be_v hereditary_a and_o be_v a_o sin_n condemn_v all_o and_o that_o unless_o jesus_n christ_n have_v help_v by_o his_o life_n and_o death_n we_o have_v all_o because_o of_o it_o perish_v eternal_o neither_o have_v we_o be_v partaker_n of_o happiness_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o if_o he_o read_v his_o confession_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o emperor_n charles_n v_n at_o the_o diet_n at_o augsburg_n a._n d._n 1539._o he_o will_v find_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o mistake_n for_o he_o will_v there_o see_v in_o what_o sense_n he_o say_v original_a sin_n be_v not_o sin_n viz._n that_o the_o original_a sin_n in_o infant_n be_v not_o their_o actual_a sin_n and_o who_o can_v say_v that_o they_o do_v actual_o eat_v the_o apple_n yet_o he_o say_v that_o up●n_o the_o account_n of_o that_o they_o be_v bear_v enemy_n to_o god_n his_o word_n be_v these_o as_o bullinger_n where_o now_o cite_v relate_v they_o i_o confess_v original_a sin_n to_o be_v bear_v with_o all_o who_o be_v beget_v of_o man_n and_o woman_n i_o know_v we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n nor_o do_v i_o stick_v at_o this_o disease_n be_v call_v after_o paul_n manner_n sin_n yea_o it_o be_v such_o a_o sin_n as_o who_o ever_o be_v bear_v in_o it_o be_v enemy_n to_o god_n and_o unto_o this_o they_o be_v draw_v by_o their_o birth_n not_o by_o commit_v of_o wickedness_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o first_o father_n do_v commit_v it_o etc._n etc._n 23._o we_o have_v now_o see_v all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v against_o the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n about_o original_a sin_n and_o have_v vindicate_v such_o argument_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o i_o shall_v now_o ere_o i_o leave_v this_o matter_n propose_v some_o more_o argument_n to_o his_o consideration_n and_o first_o i_o shall_v mention_v that_o which_o himself_o adduce_v when_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o man_n lapse_v state_n of_o wh●ch_n we_o hear_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n to_o wit_n gen._n 6_o 5._o &_o 8_o 21._o from_o which_o place_n the_o old_a father_n argue_v against_o pelagianisme_n see_v vossij_fw-la hist._n pelag._n pag._n 142_o 143._o and_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o small_a force_n in_o these_o passage_n for_o though_o the_o lord_n be_v there_o speak_v of_o the_o guilt_n and_o sin_n of_o adult_n person_n yet_o he_o be_v aggravate_v the_o same_o by_o trace_v it_o up_o to_o the_o very_a root_n &_o rise_v of_o all_o say_v that_o it_o be_v so_o with_o they_o from_o their_o infancy_n or_o child_n hood_n so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v yea_o from_o every_o state_n of_o their_o child_n hood_n for_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o pueritiis_fw-la ejus_fw-la and_o thus_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o aggravat_fw-la the_o sin_n of_o people_n ezech._n 16_o 4._o etc._n etc._n mat._n 15_o 19_o ephes._n 2_o 3._o do_v not_o such_o corrupt_a fruit_n evidence_n a_o evil_a tree_n with_o a_o bitter_a root_n of_o wickedness_n mat._n 7_o 16_o and_o see_v such_o be_v the_o fruit_n and_o act_n of_o man_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o act_v and_o bud_n who_o can_v say_v that_o the_o root_n be_v good_a and_o not_o corrupt_a &_o rot_a chrysostoms_n word_n on_o gen._n 6._o hom._n 22._o be_v remarkable_a neque_fw-la aetas_fw-la intempestiva_fw-la &_o alioquin_fw-la inexperta_fw-la malorum_fw-la expers_fw-la erat_fw-la sed_fw-la statim_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la incunabulis_fw-la omnes_fw-la malum_fw-la hoc_fw-la praelium_fw-la certabant_fw-la contendentes_fw-la ut_fw-la malis_fw-la operibus_fw-la alter_fw-la alterum_fw-la superarent_fw-la and_o it_o be_v certane_v that_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o old_a world_n perish_v in_o the_o ●●ood_a &_o the_o lord_n say_v here_o that_o it_o be_v for_o sin_n &_o wickedness_n that_o this_o judgement_n come_v on_o if_o then_o these_o infant_n do_v not_o perish_v for_o their_o immediate_a parent_n sin_n as_o this_o quaker_n affirm_v they_o must_v have_v perish_v for_o their_o own_o &_o have_v no_o actual_a sin_n of_o their_o own_o they_o must_v have_v perish_v for_o their_o original_a sin_n so_o that_o they_o also_o must_v be_v comprehend_v with_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o forecited_a place_n and_o the_o evil_a there_o speak_v of_o must_v be_v as_o well_o habitual_a as_o actual_a as_o well_o innate_a as_o acquire_v it_o be_v observable_a that_o gen._n 8_o 21._o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v of_o the_o new_a world_n that_o remain_v to_o wit_n of_o noah_n and_o his_o posterity_n 25._o we_o may_v add_v other_o scripture_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n such_o as_o psal._n 14_o 1_o 2_o &_o 53_o 1_o 2_o 3._o rom._n 3_o 9_o 10_o 23._o &_o 11_o 32._o gal._n 3_o 22._o these_z universals_z in_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v admit_v of_o no_o exception_n yea_o all_o exception_n be_v express_o exclude_v in_o the_o very_a text_n and_o the_o scope_n at_o which_o the_o apostle_n drive_v rom._n 3._o admit_v of_o no_o exception_n for_o all_o have_v need_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o god_n mercy_n in_o he_o otherwise_o the_o apostle_n argument_n shall_v be_v inconsequent_a conclude_v a_o universal_a from_o a_o particular_a and_o because_o we_o there_fw-mi not_o think_v thus_o therefore_o we_o must_v say_v that_o all_o be_v include_v and_o because_o all_o be_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v with_o actual_a sin_n original_a sin_n must_v be_v here_o include_v 26._o origen_n cyrillus_n chrysostom_n augustin_n and_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_n adduce_v to_o this_o purpose_n these_o word_n of_o job_n chap._n 14_o 4._o hence_o august_n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la &_o grat._n cap._n 3._o say_v vitiatae_fw-la radicis_fw-la macula_fw-la it_o a_o propaginis_fw-la traduce_v per_fw-la generationum_fw-la sarmenta_fw-la dissusa_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la nec_fw-la infans_fw-la quidem_fw-la unius_fw-la diei_fw-la a_o culpa_fw-la sit_fw-la primae_fw-la praevaricationis_fw-la alienus_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la indebitam_fw-la salvatoris_fw-la gratiam_fw-la fuerit_fw-la liberatus_fw-la quodsi_fw-la nec_fw-la quidem_fw-la sine_fw-la peccato_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la proprium_fw-la habere_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la conficitur_fw-la ut_fw-la illud_fw-la traxerit_fw-la alienum_fw-la de_fw-la quo_fw-la apostolus_fw-la dixit_fw-la per_fw-la unum_fw-la h●minem_fw-la etc._n etc._n now_o that_o the_o import_n of_o this_o passage_n may_v be_v the_o more_o notice_v we_o will_v consider_v that_o when_o job_n say_v who_o can_v bring_v a_o clean_a thing_n out_o of_o a_o unclean_a not_o one_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o a_o inward_a unclea●ness_n a_o uncleanness_n of_o soul_n by_o which_o we_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v vers_fw-la 3._o and_o which_o he_o point_v forth_o as_o inevitable_a and_o as_o such_o as_o no_o man_n can_v prevent_v or_o remedy_v so_o be_v he_o also_o speak_v of_o a_o uncleanness_n which_o be_v universal_a and_o therefore_o habitual_a for_o wh●t_n be_v only_o actual_a be_v not_o universal_a infant_n be_v free_a therefrom_o and_o of_o a_o uncleanness_n which_o be_v permanent_a and_o adherent_a as_o also_o of_o that_o which_o be_v traduce_v or_o propagate_v from_o father_n to_o son_n and_o be_v hereditary_a all_o which_o do_v manifest_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o original_a sin_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o every_o one_o be_v unclean_a &_o come_v into_o the_o world_n unclean_a and_o can_v be_v no_o
be_v the_o object_n of_o a_o eternal_a ordination_n when_o we_o consider_v reprobation_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o terminus_fw-la or_o thing_n will_v &_o purpose_v by_o that_o act_n of_o god_n we_o divide_v it_o into_o two_o part_n or_o say_v there_o be_v two_o main_a thing_n intend_v &_o purpose_v presuppose_v &_o not_o mention_v what_o be_v common_a both_o to_o election_n &_o reprobation_n as_o creation_n etc._n etc._n as_o first_o the_o denial_n of_o grace_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v recover_v from_o their_o state_n of_o sin_n the_o second_o be_v the_o denial_n of_o glory_n or_o adjudge_v they_o to_o eternal_a death_n this_o last_o be_v for_o sin_n &_o a_o just_a execution_n of_o a_o righteous_a sentence_n be_v not_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v without_o consideration_n of_o sin_n as_o the_o meritorious_a procure_a cause_n so_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o god_n do_v not_o damn_v who_o he_o will_v damnation_n not_o be_v a_o act_n of_o mere_a pleasure_n but_o a_o act_n of_o justice_n conform_v to_o a_o establish_a law_n but_o the_o other_o the_o deny_v or_o not_o give_v of_o grace_n be_v a_o act_n of_o absolute_a freedom_n &_o good_a pleasure_n for_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v rom._n 9_o 15_o 18._o and_o as_o god_n grant_v of_o grace_n be_v a_o absolute_a act_n of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n &_o free_a &_o not_o for_o any_o merit_n or_o goodness_n in_o man_n as_o all_o except_o pelagian_n will_v confess_v yea_o pelagius_n himself_o confess_v it_o at_o the_o synod_n in_o palestine_n so_o the_o lord_n be_v deny_v of_o this_o g●ace_n and_o mercy_n must_v be_v absolute_a and_o not_o conditional_a a_o act_n of_o the_o lord_n free_a will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n for_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n there_o be_v no_o fix_a law_n constitute_v by_o god_n according_a to_o which_o he_o bestow_v grace_n or_o bestow_v it_o not_o and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n imaginable_a why_o the_o lord_n shall_v confer_v grace_n upon_o jacob_n and_o not_o upon_o esau_n upon_o moses_n and_o not_o upon_o pharaoh_n upon_o peter_n and_o not_o upon_o judas_n beside_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n as_o the_o lord_n do_v set_v his_o love_n upon_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n because_o he_o love_v they_o deut._n 7_o 6_o 7._o so_o no_o cause_n can_v be_v give_v why_o he_o will_v not_o have_v mercy_n on_o pharaoh_n on_o esau_n on_o judas_n as_o well_o as_o on_o other_o beside_o his_o god_n will_v and_o pleasure_n who_o harden_v who_o he_o will_n 7._o we_o must_v therefore_o in_o this_o matter_n careful_o distinguish_v betwixt_o god_n decree_n and_o the_o thing_n decree_v thing_n decree_v may_v have_v their_o cause_n and_o one_o may_v depend_v upon_o another_o as_o on_o the_o meritorious_a procure_a cause_n but_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_a have_v no_o dependence_n upon_o any_o thing_n without_o be_v the_o absolute_a and_o free_a act_n of_o his_o will._n god_n may_v and_o do_v decree_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v because_o of_o that_o and_o yet_o because_o of_o this_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o will_n that_o so_o when_o the_o lord_n decree_v to_o damn_v some_o person_n because_o of_o their_o sin_n though_o sin_n be_v the_o procure_v meritorious_a cause_n of_o damnation_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o procure_n meritorious_a cause_n of_o god_n willing_a or_o decree_a to_o damn_v therefore_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n decree_v to_o save_v none_o but_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o continue_v in_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o end_n and_o to_o damn_v none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v sinner_n and_o continue_v in_o sin_n to_o the_o end_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o say_v that_o as_o faith_n and_o obedience_n in_o adult_n person_n do_v precede_v salvation_n as_o some_o way_n dispose_v cause_n thereunto_o and_o as_o final_a perseverance_n in_o sin_n precee_v damnation_n as_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n thereof_o so_o the_o foresight_n of_o faith_n obedience_n and_o final_a perseverance_n in_o both_o precede_v election_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n as_o dispose_v cause_n or_o prerequisites_n thereunto_o and_o the_o foresight_n of_o final_a perseverance_n in_o sin_n precede_v reprobation_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n as_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n thereof_o for_o as_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o election_n be_v not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o he_o that_o call_v rom._n 9_o 11._o so_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o reprobation_n can_v be_v of_o work_n for_o the_o child_n be_v not_o yet_o bear_v neither_o have_v do_v good_a or_o evil_n it_o be_v say_v the_o elder_a shall_v serve_v the_o young_a rom._n 9.11_o 12._o as_o the_o potter_n have_v power_n over_o the_o clay_n of_o the_o same_o lump_n to_o make_v one_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n and_o another_o unto_o dishonour_n rom._n 9_o 21._o so_o the_o lord_n willing_a to_o show_v his_o wrath_n &_o to_o make_v his_o power_n know_v may_v endure_v with_o much_o long-suffering_a the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n fit_v to_o destruction_n and_o he_o may_v make_v know_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n on_o the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n which_o he_o have_v afore_o prepare_v unto_o glory_n rom._n 9_o vers_fw-la 22.23_o 8._o as_o the_o scripture_n hold_v forth_o reprobation_n as_o we_o hear_v and_o may_v be_v further_o gather_v even_o as_o to_o the_o name_n from_o jer._n 6_o 30._o heb._n 6_o 8._o 2_o tim._n 3_o 8._o so_o it_o hold_v it_o forth_o to_o we_o sometime_o in_o negative_a term_n sometime_o in_o positive_a term_n hence_o some_o speak_v of_o a_o negative_a reprobation_n call_v preterition_n or_o pass_v by_o which_o be_v a_o real_a positive_a act_n in_o god_n and_o not_o pure_o negative_a as_o some_o suppose_n and_o of_o a_o positive_a and_o affirmative_a reprobation_n which_o they_o call_v praedamnation_n by_o the_o negative_a reprobation_n they_o understand_v a_o positive_a eternal_a act_n of_o god_n whereby_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n he_o pass_v by_o such_o as_o he_o do_v not_o elect_a and_o resolve_v not_o to_o give_v they_o save_v grace_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n as_o when_o ch●ist_n say_v math._n 7_o 23._o i_o n●ver_o know_v you_o and_o mat._n 11_o 25_o 26._o i_o thank_v thou_o o_o father_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a even_o so_o father_n for_o so_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o thy_o sight_n and_o when_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o some_o in_o the_o revel_n chap_n 13_o ●_o and_o 20_o 15._o who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o when_o christ_n say_v joh._n 10_o 26._o you_o be_v not_o of_o my_o sheep_n by_o the_o positive_a or_o affirmative_a reprobation_n they_o understand_v the_o lord_n positive_a resolution_n according_a to_o the_o unsearchable_a counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n whereby_o he_o ordain_v such_o as_o he_o have_v pass_v by_o to_o dishonour_v and_o wrath_n for_o their_o sin_n hence_o such_o be_v say_v to_o be_v hate_v rom._n 9_o 13._o to_o be_v vessel_n of_o wrath_n fit_v for_o destruction_n rom._n 9_o 21_o 22._o to_o be_v appoint_v unto_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n 1_o pet._n 2_o 8._o &_o ordain_v to_o condemnation_n jud._n vers_fw-la 4._o to_o which_o also_o belong_v the_o lord_n just_a and_o judicial_a smite_v with_o blindeness_n give_v up_o to_o a_o reproba●_n mind_n and_o to_o their_o own_o heart_n lust_n harden_v their_o heart_n and_o the_o like_a rome_n 1_o 24_o 26_o 28._o &_o 9_o 18._o &_o 11_o 7._o psal._n 81_o 12._o 9_o now_o as_o touch_v that_o question_n that_o this_o quaker_n be_v most_o busy_v with_o viz._n whether_o reprobation_n be_v absolute_a and_o without_o all_o respect_n have_v to_o sin_n or_o not_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v by_o what_o be_v say_v what_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v thereunto_o the_o quaker_n love_v darkness_n speak_v undistinct_o either_o because_o ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a question_n or_o out_o of_o a_o malicious_a design_n to_o render_v the_o truth_n &_o we_o for_o maintain_v it_o odious_a or_o both_o but_o we_o shall_v endeavoure_n in_o a_o few_o word_n to_o clear_v the_o mater_fw-la if_o we_o consider_v the_o act_n of_o reprobation_n as_o in_o god_n of_o who_o will_n it_o be_v a_o immanent_a and_o eternal_a act_n there_o can_v be_v no_o more_o cause_n of_o it_o in_o man_n or_o a●y_a creature_n than_o of_o any_o other_o of_o his_o decree_n which_o be_v all_o one_o act_n and_o so_o one_o with_o himself_o yet_o this_o act_n of_o reprobate_v that_o be_v of_o appoint_v and_o design_v such_o or_o such_o individual_a person_n to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o hell_n for_o their_o sin_n can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v as_o to_o its_o
may_v also_o obtain_v the_o salvation_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n with_o eternal_a glory_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o the_o lord_n can_v send_v out_o his_o servant_n to_o call-in_a the_o elect_n but_o he_o must_v point_v they_o out_o unto_o they_o by_o name_n and_o surname_n what_o if_o god_n willing_a to_o show_v his_o wrath_n and_o to_o make_v his_o power_n know_v shall_v endure_v with_o much_o long_o suffer_v the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n fit_v to_o destruction_n rom._n 9_o 22._o shall_v we_o quarrel_v with_o the_o most_o high_a if_o god_n make_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n that_o be_v elect_a and_o precious_a unto_o believer_n a_o stone_n of_o stumble_v and_o a_o rock_n of_o offence_n even_o to_o they_o which_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n be_v disobedient_a whereunto_o also_o they_o be_v ordain_v 1_o pet._n 2.6_o 7_o 8._o must_v we_o impute_v folly_n unto_o our_o god_n and_o say_v that_o he_o be_v mock_v 4._o the_o whole_a of_o this_o discourse_n be_v found_v upon_o this_o grand_a error_n that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v not_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n contrare_fw-la to_o ephes._n 2_o 8._o &_o 6_o 23._o phil._n 1_o 29._o 1_o cor._n 4_o 7._o act._n 5_o 31._o &_o 11_o 18._o 2_o tim._n 2_o 25._o for_o if_o paul_n may_v plant_v and_o apollo_n water_n but_o god_n only_o must_v give_v the_o increase_n 1_o cor._n 3_o 5_o 6.7_o then_o the_o give_v of_o success_n unto_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v god_n free_a gift_n otherwise_o what_o can_v quaker_n pray_v for_o or_o minister_n say_v when_o they_o be_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o a_o blessing_n on_o their_o labour_n nay_o it_o seem_v quaker_n be_v against_o all_o such_o prayer_n be_v pure_a pelagian_n and_o so_o asserte_n that_o man_n of_o himself_o may_v believe_v and_o repent_v if_o not_o will_v they_o not_o grant_v god_n liberty_n to_o distribute_v his_o own_o gift_n as_o he_o will_v 1_o cor._n 12_o 11_o be_v god_n under_o any_o obligation_n to_o give_v grace_n to_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n this_o be_v pure_a pelagianism_n to_o say_v that_o grace_n be_v confer_v according_a to_o work_n 5._o this_o man_n own_o doctrine_n be_v expose_v to_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o afterward_o as_o we_o shall_v hear_v that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n and_o date_n prescribe_v to_o every_o man_n after_o which_o their_o salvation_n be_v not_o possible_a now_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v grant_v that_o the_o word_n or_o at_o least_o the_o light_n within_o may_v continue_v exhort_v such_o to_o repent_v and_o return_v &_o yet_o all_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v will_v he_o say_v that_o god_n thereby_o be_v but_o mock_v they_o let_v he_o first_o liberate_v his_o own_o doctrine_n and_o then_o return_v upon_o we_o 23._o in_o the_o five_o place_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v injurious_a to_o the_o come_n and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o christ._n why_o so_o because_o it_o make_v it_o a_o great_a judgement_n &_o plague_n unto_o many_o etc._n etc._n ans._n and_o must_v not_o christ_n be_v for_o the_o fall_n of_o many_o in_o israel_n luk._n 2_o 34._o why_o else_o be_v he_o call_v a_o stone_n of_o stumble_v esai_n 8_o 14._o rom._n 9_o 33._o 1_o pet._n 2_o 6._o why_o do_v christ_n say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o chorazin_n and_o bethsaida_n and_o for_o the_o land_n of_o sodom_n than_o for_o capernaum_n mat._n 11_o 21_o 22_o 23_o 24._o and_o why_o say_v he_o joh_n 15_o 22_o 24_o 25_o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o cloak_n for_o their_o sin_n if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o the_o work_n which_o no_o other_o man_n do_v they_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v fulfil_v that_o be_v write_v in_o their_o law_n they_o hate_v i_o without_o a_o cause_n why_o say_v he_o joh._n 9_o 39_o for_o judgement_n i_o be_o come_v into_o this_o world_n that_o they_o which_o see_v may_v be_v make_v blind_a let_v the_o quaker_n answer_v these_o passage_n and_o then_o rant_v according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o let_v he_o tell_v i_o how_o it_o will_v fare_v with_o those_o that_o do_v not_o repent_v before_o their_o day_n of_o visitation_n go_v over_o it_o be_v this_o man_n have_v to_o wound_v himself_o out_o of_o a_o keenness_n in_o pursue_v we_o 24._o in_o the_o six_o place_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o mankind_n make_v man_n condition_n worse_o than_o the_o devil_n ans._n this_o be_v a_o injury_n indeed_o but_o the_o challenge_n be_v neither_o true_a nor_o honest_a for_o we_o look_v upon_o devil_n as_o already_o under_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n and_o in_o the_o same_o state_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n that_o reprobate_n be_v into_o after_o death_n and_o we_o suppose_v it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o with_o man_n though_o reprobate_n before_o death_n than_o it_o be_v with_o devil_n devil_n be_v under_o no_o offer_n of_o mercy_n now_o man_n be_v devil_n know_v themselves_o to_o be_v damn_v man_n do_v not_o devil_n be_v damn_v irrecoverable_o for_o their_o first_o sin_n man_n that_o come_v to_o age_n sin_v himself_o more_o and_o more_o unto_o damnation_n man_n that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n be_v punish_v because_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o the_o offer_n but_o do_v willing_o reject_v it_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v can_v this_o be_v say_v of_o devil_n devil_n be_v reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n under_o darkness_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n jud._n 6._o this_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o reprobat_fw-la yet_o alive_a many_o of_o the_o reprobat_n have_v common_a grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o be_v restrain_v from_o many_o sin_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o devil_n but_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n the_o devil_n have_v once_o a_o possibility_n of_o stand_v but_o many_o million_o of_o man_n have_v never_o any_o opportunity_n of_o salvation_n but_o because_o of_o adam_n sin_n of_o who_o they_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v perpetual_o torment_v but_o do_v not_o all_o mankind_n by_o our_o doctrine_n stand_v in_o adam_n &_o fall_v with_o he_o they_o be_v not_o then_o punish_v for_o another_o sin_n but_o for_o their_o own_o as_o we_o manifest_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n how_o do_v this_o reach_n all_o mankind_n when_o god_n according_a to_o his_o everlasting_a good_a pleasure_n have_v choose_v a_o goodly_a number_n who_o he_o will_v glorify_v for_o ever_o will_v the_o lord_n do_v so_o with_o any_o of_o the_o devil_n belike_o that_o their_o condition_n may_v not_o be_v every_o way_n worse_o than_o man_n this_o quaker_n will_v give_v they_o hope_n that_o some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o may_v be_v save_v provide_v they_o harken_v well_o to_o the_o light_n within_o &_o they_o have_v th●_n conviction_n &_o faith_n of_o a_o god_n &_o know_v that_o he_o be_v merciful_a holy_a just_a etc._n etc._n as_o well_o as_o man_n &_o be_v of_o as_o sharp_a understanding_n &_o in_o know_v what_o be_v right_a &_o wrong_n as_o many_o man_n be_v but_o if_o all_o this_o will_v not_o satisfy_v this_o quaker_n let_v i_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v carry_v some_o respect_n to_o they_o the_o word_n be_v to_o be_v find_v rom._n 9_o 20._o nay_o but_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o that_o reply_v against_o god_n shall_v the_o thing_n form_v say_v to_o he_o that_o form_v it_o why_o have_v thou_o make_v i_o thus_o etc._n etc._n but_o he_o add_v that_o we_o put_v man_n in_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o the_o beast_n be_v in_o why_o so_o because_o their_o owner_n require_v no_o more_o of_o they_o than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v and_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o their_o misery_n but_o by_o our_o doctrine_n man_n be_v perpetual_o torment_v because_o he_o do_v not_o that_o which_o he_o can_v and_o thus_o god_n deal_v with_o man_n worse_o than_o pharaoh_n do_v with_o the_o israelite_n for_o though_o he_o withhold_v straw_n from_o they_o they_o can_v get_v it_o with_o a_o little_a more_o industry_n answ._n what_o shall_v we_o say_v unto_o this_o man_n who_o thus_o bark_v and_o belch_v out_o against_o god_n he_o suppose_v that_o he_o be_v spew_v out_o this_o gall_n against_o we_o alas_o what_o be_v we_o that_o he_o shall_v thus_o bark_v against_o we_o his_o barking_n will_v be_v find_v against_o the_o lord_n and_o
render_v the_o truth_n we_o own_o odious_a for_o neither_o do_v he_o tell_v we_o his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v this_o nor_o will_v he_o on●e_v consider_v what_o ground_n we_o walk_v upon_o or_o speak_v one_o word_n to_o the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n upon_o which_o we_o ground_n our_o opinion_n think_v he_o that_o his_o reader_n will_v not_o be_v in_o case_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o fraudulent_a and_o unfaithful_a deal_n it_o be_v well_o that_o he_o have_v write_v this_o in_o latin_a for_o the_o world_n be_v no_o stranger_n unto_o the_o debate_n betwixt_o the_o orthodox_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o pelagian_n socinian_o arminian_n and_o jesuit_n on_o the_o other_o but_o we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o follow_a thesis_n chap._n viii_o of_o universal_a redemption_n 1._o our_o quaker_n have_v as_o we_o hear_v lay_v by_o and_o take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n so_o far_o as_o he_o can_v the_o principal_a and_o fundamental_a discriminate_a purpose_n of_o god_n in_o deny_v for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v observe_v all_o eternal_a election_n and_o reprobation_n and_o have_v thereby_o homologate_v with_o arminian_n as_o also_o with_o socinian_o who_o run_v upon_o universality_n as_o abhor_v all_o specialty_n and_o discriminate_v act_n exclusive_a of_o any_o except_o what_o lord_n free_a will_n do_v and_o of_o which_o this_o absolute_a and_o supreme_a lord_n be_v master_n and_o disposer_n and_o therefore_o assert_v in_o the_o first_o place_n a_o universal_a love_n and_o good_a will_n in_o god_n to_o all_o and_o every_o mother_n son_n of_o the_o race_n of_o mankind_n he_o proceed_v in_o show_v we_o how_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o universality_n he_o be_v their_o friend_n and_o therefore_o talk_v not_o only_o of_o a_o universal_a ransom_n &_o price_n pay_v for_o all_o adam_n posterity_n by_o christ_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v next_o but_o proceed_v as_o we_o shall_v hear_v to_o hold_v forth_o a_o universal_a covenant_n of_o free_a grace_n make_v with_o all_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n though_o he_o be_v please_v to_o give_v we_o it_o in_o other_o term_n and_o a_o universal_a call_n and_o gospel_n as_o also_o universal_a grace_n by_o which_o every_o one_o may_v if_o he_o will_v lay_v hold_v on_o the_o offer_n and_o be_v save_v and_o withal_o he_o give_v we_o a_o salvation_n among_o heathen_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v 2._o when_o he_o reject_v election_n &_o reprobation_n absolute_a he_o make_v way_n and_o lay_v a_o good_a foundation_n for_o this_o other_o error_n of_o universal_a redemption_n for_o these_o two_o can_v well_o be_v separate_v however_o some_o of_o late_o will_v maintain_v this_o universal_a redemption_n and_o withal_o assert_v a_o election_n of_o grace_n whereby_o the_o lord_n make_v choice_n of_o so_o many_o as_o please_v he_o who_o he_o will_v certain_o redeem_v and_o bring_v to_o glory_n which_o i_o can_v see_v how_o they_o can_v consonant_o and_o satisfy_o hold_v unless_o they_o can_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n two_o distinct_a covenant_n betwixt_o jehovah_n and_o the_o mediator_n two_o distinct_a and_o different_a end_n of_o christ_n death_n two_o distinct_a price_n lay_v down_o and_o two_o distinct_a purchase_n make_v if_o the_o one_o can_v well_o be_v call_v a_o purchase_n two_o satisfaction_n christ_n a_o cautioner_n and_o no-caution_a a_o redeemer_n and_o no-redeemer_n a_o absolute_a saviour_n and_o a_o conditional_a saviour_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o scripture_n clear_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o we_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o see_v 3._o as_o concern_v the_o point_n of_o universal_a redemption_n we_o find_v various_a sentiment_n or_o various_a explication_n of_o the_o matter_n give_v to_o we_o by_o adversary_n for_o they_o do_v not_o all_o agree_v in_o their_o apprehension_n of_o the_o thing_n some_o explain_v the_o mat●er_n thus_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n to_o be_v a_o redeemer_n and_o propitiator_n for_o adam_n and_o all_o his_o posterity_n who_o by_o his_o death_n do_v pacify_v a_o angry_a god_n and_o restore_v mankind_n to_o their_o lose_a inheritance_n so_o as_o all_o who_o be_v now_o condemn_v be_v not_o condemn_v for_o their_o former_a sin_n and_o guilt_n for_o christ_n have_v abundant_o satisfy_v for_o these_o but_o for_o their_o unbeleef_n for_o not_o believe_v in_o th●_n redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o reject_v the_o reconciliation_n make_v &_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n declare_v in_o the_o word_n and_o thus_o they_o must_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o all_o sin_n but_o unbelief_n and_o that_o salvation_n do_v not_o certain_o follow_v upon_o this_o reconciliation_n and_o so_o that_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o reconciliableness_n than_o a_o reconciliation_n and_o they_o must_v necessary_o maintain_v that_o this_o matter_n be_v reveal_v unto_o all_o and_o every_o son_n of_o adam_n who_o otherwise_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o reject_v this_o reconciliation_n other_o way_n it_o shall_v be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o they_o unless_o they_o say_v that_o the_o want_n of_o the_o revelation_n put_v they_o out_o of_o a_o capacity_n of_o be_v guilty_a of_o unbelief_n and_o so_o they_o must_v necessary_o be_v save_v and_o thus_o their_o condition_n shall_v be_v undoubted_o better_a than_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o such_o as_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o then_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v no_o favour_n but_o a_o prejudice_n rather_o and_o in_o reference_n to_o this_o they_o devise_v a_o universal_a and_o antecedanious_a love_n whereby_o god_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n be_v incline_v to_o desire_v the_o happiness_n and_o salvation_n of_o every_o mother_n son_n and_o therefore_o to_o send_v his_o son_n to_o die_v for_o all_o as_o if_o god_n have_v such_o natural_a and_o necessary_a inclination_n and_o as_o if_o all_o his_o love_n to_o mankind_n and_o every_o appointment_n of_o his_o concern_v we_o be_v not_o the_o free_a act_n of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n and_o as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o antecedent_n and_o conditional_a will_n in_o god_n that_o can_v or_o may_v have_v no_o issue_n or_o accomplishment_n but_o as_o lord_n free_a will_n will_v and_o as_o if_o the_o love_n that_o send_v c●rist_n be_v only_o such_o a_o poor_a conditional_a inclination_n towards_o all_o mankind_n which_o the_o scripture_n hold_v forth_o as_o the_o great_a of_o love_n and_o as_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o the_o effect_n and_o grant_n which_o man_v full_a salvation_n call_v for_o but_o why_o can_v not_o this_o love_n effectuate_v the_o good_a of_o all_o therefore_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o justice_n be_v injure_v by_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v satisfy_v that_o love_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o wish_v well_o to_o all_o sinner_n can_v effectuate_v nothing_o as_o to_o the_o recovery_n of_o any_o and_o upon_o this_o ground_n they_o imagine_v christ_n be_v send_v to_o make_v a_o universal_a atonement_n and_o so_o justice_n be_v satisfy_v may_v not_o obstruct_v the_o salvation_n of_o any_o who_o free_a will_n will_v consent_v unto_o term_n of_o new_a to_o be_v propose_v 4._o other_o hold_v forth_o the_o matter_n thus_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n do_v proper_o die_v for_o this_o end_n and_o by_o his_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n obtain_v that_o all_o and_o every_o man_n who_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v for_o his_o sake_n actual_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n eternal_a but_o other_o in_o case_n they_o will_v repent_v and_o believe_v may_v obtain_v it_o but_o thus_o we_o hear_v no_o word_n of_o christ_n obtain_v any_o thing_n to_o any_o in_o particular_a no_o word_n of_o his_o obtain_n faith_n and_o repantence_n and_o what_o counsel_n of_o god_n can_v this_o be_v to_o send_v christ_n to_o die_v for_o person_n upon_o that_o condition_n which_o he_o know_v they_o will_v not_o and_o can_v not_o perform_v and_o what_o by_o this_o mean_n have_v christ_n propitiatory_a sacrifice_n obtain_v more_o than_o a_o mere_a possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o either_o one_o or_o other_o shall_v we_o imagine_v that_o god_n design_v good_a to_o person_n who_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v it_o or_o that_o god_n have_v conditional_a intention_n and_o design_n by_o this_o mean_n christ_n death_n be_v design_v and_o no_o person_n design_v thereby_o to_o be_v save_v yea_o christ_n shall_v be_v design_v to_o die_v and_o that_o for_o no_o certain_a end_n unless_o to_o procure_v a_o mere_a possibility_n by_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o justice_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o stand_v in_o the_o way_n but_o then_o we_o can_v not_o say_v that_o god_n send_v christ_n to_o die_v for_o any_o man_n much_o less_o for_o all._n 5._o other_o express_v the_o matter_n thus_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o gracious_a decree_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n do_v undergo_v death_n that_o he_o may_v procure_v and_o
that_o the_o effect_n of_o all_o this_o non-such_a love_n both_o of_o the_o father_n &_o of_o the_o son_n be_v only_o a_o possible_a salvation_n and_o redemption_n and_o that_o all_o this_o love_n shall_v be_v out_v and_o possible_o not_o one_o man_n save_v either_o the_o lord_n know_v that_o some_o will_v get_v good_a by_o this_o fruit_n of_o wonderful_a love_n or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o he_o be_v not_o omniscient_a and_o then_o the_o father_n give_v his_o son_n and_o the_o son_n come_v and_o both_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o great_a love_n imaginable_a and_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o know_v that_o any_o one_o soul_n shall_v be_v save_v for_o all_o that_o if_o he_o know_v than_o he_o know_v that_o they_o will_v get_v good_a by_o it_o either_o by_o themselves_o alone_o without_o his_o grace_n or_o not_o if_o the_o first_o why_o will_v he_o send_v his_o son_n to_o die_v and_o why_o will_v christ_n come_v to_o die_v for_o such_o as_o they_o see_v will_v never_o have_v a_o will_v to_o be_v save_v by_o his_o death_n if_o the_o last_o be_v say_v then_o see_v the_o great_a expression_n of_o love_n be_v to_o send_v his_o son_n and_o in_o the_o son_n to_o come_v and_o die_v how_o can_v we_o think_v that_o that_o be_v for_o all_o when_o the_o grace_n to_o improve_v that_o death_n and_o profit_n by_o it_o be_v not_o design_v for_o all_o say_v not_o paul_n rom._n 8_o 32._o he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o he_o also_o free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n import_v that_o that_o be_v impossible_a shall_v we_o imagine_v that_o that_o be_v the_o great_a love_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o effectuate_v the_o salvation_n of_o those_o upon_o who_o it_o be_v set_v and_o how_o can_v this_o be_v that_o the_o great_a effect_n of_o this_o great_a love_n shall_v be_v common_a to_o all_o and_o small_a effect_n not_o common_a also_o see_v also_o 1_o joh._n 4_o 9_o 10_o 11._o where_o this_o special_a love_n by_o which_o christ_n be_v send_v be_v make_v peculiar_a unto_o believer_n for_o john_n be_v speak_v of_o none_o else_o so_o ●s_v this_o love_n peculiar_o terminate_v on_o christ_n wife_n and_o church_n ephes._n 5_o 25_o 2._o and_o have_v gracious_a and_o save_a effect_n gal._n 2_o 20._o tit._n 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o epes_n 2_o 4_o 5_o 6._o rom._n 8_o 36_o 37._o 2_o thes._n 2.16_o 17._o revel_v 1_o 5_o 6._o beside_o that_o this_o love_n be_v mention_v as_o a_o old_a everlasting_a and_o unchangeable_a love_n jer._n 31_o 3._o ephes._n 1_o 3_o 4._o rom._n 9_o 11._o joh._n 13_o 1._o zeph._n 3_o 17._o and_o be_v all_o this_o nothing_o but_o a_o general_n common_a thing_n that_o can_v save_v one_o soul_n if_o lord_n free_a will_n do_v not_o consent_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n 16_o moreover_o 5._o if_o we_o consider_v the_o end_n assign_v to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n mention_v in_o scripture_n we_o shall_v see_v that_o it_o be_v some_o other_o thing_n than_o a_o mere_a possible_a delivery_n and_o redemption_n common_a to_o all_o mankind_n mat._n 18_o 11._o he_o come_v to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o not_o to_o make_v their_o salvation_n mere_o possible_a for_o if_o that_o be_v all_o christ_n argument_n shall_v have_v have_v no_o strength_n so_o 1_o tim._n 1_o 15._o jesus_n christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n if_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a possibility_n that_o may_v never_o t●ke_v effect_n h●w_o shall_v this_o faithful_a say_n be_v worthy_a of_o all_o acception_n so_o luk._n 19_o 10._o where_o the_o matter_n be_v exemplify_v in_o zaccheus_n mat._n 1_o 21._o the_o reason_n of_o the_o name_n jesus_n give_v to_o the_o redeemer_n be_v because_o he_o shall_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n that_o be_v actual_o and_o real_o and_o not_o potential_o or_o possible_o only_a and_o this_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o all_o for_o he_o say_v no●_n the_o reprobat_fw-la from_o their_o sin_n at_o least_o not_o from_o the_o sin_n of_o unbeleef_n b●_n the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n but_o here_o no_o sin_n be_v except_v and_o therefore_o be_v his_o death_n restrict_v to_o his_o people_n who_o he_o save_v from_o all_o their_o sin_n heb._n 2_o 14_o 15._o there_o be_v another_o end_n of_o his_o death_n mention_v viz._n that_o he_o may_v destroy_v he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o deliver_v they_o who_o through_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v all_o their_o life-time_n subject_a to_o bondage_n this_o be_v no_o mere_a possible_a deliverance_n but_o actual_a and_o effectual_a and_o it_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o for_o it_o be_v restrict_v to_o his_o brethren_n vers_fw-la 11_o 12_o 17._o and_o to_o son_n 13._o &_o to_o the_o child_n which_o god_n give_v he_o vers_n 13_o 14._o &_o to_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n vers_fw-la 16._o and_o again_o vers_fw-la 17._o wherefore_o in_o all_o thing_n it_o behove_v he_o to_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o his_o brother_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o merciful_a and_o faithful_a high_a priest_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n to_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n behove_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o merciful_a and_o faithful_a high_a priest_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n only_o to_o make_v a_o possible_a reconciliation_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v that_o not_o one_o person_n shall_v be_v reconcile_v and_o be_v the_o reprobate_n his_o brethren_n ephes._n 5_o 25_o 26._o to_o what_o end_n do_v christ_n give_v himself_o for_o his_o church_n and_o all_o the_o world_n of_o mankind_n belong_v not_o to_o his_o church_n it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v and_o cleanse_v it_o with_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n by_o the_o word_n that_o he_o may_v present_v it_o to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blemish_n be_v this_o a_o mere_a possibility_n then_o may_v christ_n have_v die_v and_o have_v have_v no_o church_n to_o present_v to_o himself_o fair_a and_o spotless_a his_o church_n may_v have_v remain_v full_a of_o spot_n and_o wrinkle_n unholy_a and_o full_a of_o blemish_n yea_o shall_v have_v be_v no_o church_n tit._n 2_o 14._o he_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n zealous_a of_o good_a work_n do_v all_o the_o world_n belong_v to_o this_o peculiar_a people_n do_v christ_n redeem_v all_o the_o world_n from_o all_o iniquity_n be_v all_o the_o world_n purify_v and_o make_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n or_o be_v all_o this_o a_o mere_a maybe_o which_o may_v not_o be_v 2_o corinth_n 5_o vers_fw-la 21._o he_o have_v make_v he_o to_o be_v sin_n for_o we_o who_o know_v no_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o be_v christ_n make_v sin_n or_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v possible_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o that_o be_v that_o possible_o not_o one_o person_n may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o who_o can_v dream_v thus_o that_o god_n intention_n and_o design_n shall_v be_v so_o loose_a and_o frustrable_a and_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v so_o uncertain_a in_o his_o purpose_n gal._n 1_o 4._o why_o do_v the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o our_o father_n this_o be_v no_o mere_a possible_a deliverance_n and_o it_o be_v such_o as_o be_v design_v not_o for_o all_o the_o world_n but_o for_o the_o we_o there_o mention_v so_o chap._n 4_o 4_o 5_o god_o send_v forth_o his_o son_n make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n to_o redeem_v they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n this_o real_a benefit_n be_v manifest_o here_o restrick●d_v joh._n 17_o 19_o for_o their_o sake_n i_o sanctify_v any_o self_n that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o truth_n christ_n sanctify_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n not_o to_o obtain_v a_o mere_a may_v be_v but_o that_o they_o for_o who_o sake_n he_o do_v sanctify_v himself_o that_o be_v they_o that_o be_v give_v to_o he_o vers_n 6_o 9_o and_o be_v his_o own_o vers_fw-la 10._o and_o be_v in_o due_a time_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o vers_fw-la 20._o might_n really_n and_o actual_o be_v sanctify_v through_o he_o heb._n 13_o 12._o wherefore_o do_v jesus_n suffer_v without_o the_o
give_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n not_o such_o a_o life_n sure_a as_o may_v never_o quicken_v any_o upon_o christ_n death_n do_v the_o apostle_n infer_v rom._n 8_o 32._o that_o the_o elect_n shall_v have_v all_o thing_n and_o vers_fw-la 33_o 34_o 35._o that_o they_o be_v free_a from_o all_o accusation_n or_o any_o hazard_n there_o from_o be_v justify_v and_o have_v christ_n death_n resurrection_n and_o intercession_n to_o secure_v they_o at_o all_o hand_n &_o thereupon_o they_o have_v assurance_n that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n act._n 20_o 28._o christ_n have_v purchase_v a_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o this_o church_n nor_o be_v this_o purchase_n a_o uncertane_v may_v be_v and_o all_o this_o real_a and_o certain_a effect_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v foretell_v by_o daniel_n chap_n 9_o 24_o to_o finish_v the_o transgression_n and_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o iniquity_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o everlasting_a righteousness_n etc._n etc._n and_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o this_o be_v universal_a or_o uncer●ane_n 18._o if_o we_o will_v 7._o consider_v some_o other_o end_v of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o scripture_n point_v forth_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o heathen_n or_o any_o except_o the_o few_o choose_a one_o ordain_v to_o life_n we_o shall_v see_v how_o unreasonable_a this_o quaker_n be_v gal._n 4_o 5._o christ_n die_v to_o redeem_v they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n be_v this_o end_n and_o fruit_n leave_v at_o a_o uncertanty_n shall_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n may_v have_v die_v and_o yet_o not_o one_o man_n receive_v this_o adoption_n be_v this_o adoption_n purchase_v upon_o a_o uncertain_a condition_n or_o be_v this_o purchase_v equal_o for_o all_o then_o such_o as_o receive_v it_o may_v have_v thank_v their_o own_o well_o nature_a free_a will_n upon_o that_o account_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v some_o other_o fruit_n gal._n 1_o 4._o who_o give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n so_o 1_o pet._n 2_o 24._o he_o bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n but_o for_o what_o end_n that_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n shall_v live_v unto_o righteousness_n &_o chap._n 3_o 18._o christ_n suffer_v for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o god_n heb._n 10_o 10._o by_o the_o which_o will_v we_o be_v sanctify_v how_o come_v this_o to_o pass_v through_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o so_o he_o suffer_v without_o the_o gate_n that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o people_n chap._n 13_o 12._o revel_v 1_o 5_o 6._o he_o love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n but_o be_v this_o all_o no_o it_o be_v add_v and_o have_v make_v we_o king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n and_o his_o father_n so_o ch._n 5_o 9_o 10._o thou_o be_v slay_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n by_o thy_o blood_n and_o what_o more_o and_o have_v make_v we_o unto_o our_o god_n king_n and_o priest_n etc._n etc._n so_o 2_o cor._n 5_o 15_o he_o die_v for_o all_o but_o for_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o they_o which_o live_v shall_v not_o henceforth_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o which_o die_v for_o they_o and_o rose_z again_o see_v col._n 1_o 22._o these_o and_o the_o like_a passage_n do_v clear_o point_n forth_o a_o special_a end_n of_o christ_n death_n which_o be_v design_v both_o by_o the_o father_n that_o send_v he_o and_o by_o himself_o and_o shall_v we_o suppose_v that_o this_o great_a and_o chief_a design_n be_v make_v to_o hang_v upon_o the_o lubric_n and_o uncertain_a will_n of_o man_n shall_v christ_n be_v behold_v to_o man_n good_a will_n for_o the_o purchase_n he_o make_v at_o so_o dear_a a_o rate_n if_o not_o why_o be_v not_o all_o these_o end_n attain_v in_o all_o for_o who_o he_o die_v do_v christ_n fail_v in_o lay_v down_o the_o ransom_n or_o do_v not_o the_o father_n keep_v condition_n who_o can_v say_v either_o of_o these_o then_o sure_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n make_v a_o uncertain_a bargan_n and_o purchase_v only_o a_o possibility_n of_o these_o fruit_n which_o he_o know_v not_o if_o ever_o he_o shall_v attain_v in_o any_o one_o nor_o to_o say_v that_o he_o die_v for_o all_o 19_o let_v we_o further_o 8._o take_v notice_n that_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v he_o die_v to_o take_v away_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o so_o as_o they_o may_v be_v full_o pardon_v &_o never_o bring_v on_o reckon_v again_o that_o be_v that_o they_o be_v remit_v and_o pardon_v and_o that_o the_o poor_a sinner_n may_v not_o suffer_v therefore_o this_o sure_a must_v be_v the_o import_n of_o that_o prayer_n forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n if_o then_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n have_v take_v away_o sin_n and_o purge_v it_o away_o make_v satisfaction_n to_o justice_n therefore_o how_o can_v we_o think_v that_o justice_n can_v punish_v the_o sinner_n in_o hell_n fire_n for_o these_o same_o sin_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o scripture_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3_o 5._o he_o be_v manifest_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n ephes._n 1_o 7._o we_o have_v redemption_n in_o his_o blood_n what_o redemption_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n so_o likewise_o col._n 1_o 14._o now_o when_o sin_n be_v thus_o take_v away_o they_o be_v blot_v ou●_n and_o not_o remember_v esai_n 43_o 25._o jer._n 31_o 34._o heb._n 8_o 12._o yea_o they_o be_v blot_v out_o as_o a_o cloud_n and_o as_o a_o thick_a cloud_n esai_n 44_o 22._o so_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v subdue_v &_o casten_z into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o sea_n mica_n 7_o 19_o shall_v we_o now_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v die_v to_o purchase_v this_o redemption_n the_o forgiveness_n and_o blot_v out_o as_o a_o thick_a cloud_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o sin_n and_o yet_o multitude_n of_o those_o for_o who_o this_o be_v purchase_v and_o that_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n shall_v never_o obtain_v this_o benefit_n but_o have_v all_o their_o sin_n charge_v upon_o their_o own_o score_n this_o so_o pinch_v the_o adversary_n that_o the_o best_a evasion_n they_o can_v fall_v upon_o be_v to_o say_v that_o none_o shall_v have_v original_a sin_n charge_v upon_o they_o but_o the_o scripture_n no_o where_o estrict_v this_o remission_n to_o that_o sin_n only_o other_o therefore_o say_v that_o no_o sin_n now_o shall_v be_v charge_v upon_o any_o but_o the_o sin_n of_o unbeleef_n then_o judas_n do_v not_o suffer_v to_o day_n for_o betray_v his_o master_n be_v it_o for_o this_o sin_n only_o that_o the_o old_a world_n be_v drown_v or_o that_o the_o city_n of_o sodom_n be_v suffer_v the_o vengeance_n of_o eternal_a fire_n jude_n seem_v to_o say_v some_o other_o thing_n vers_fw-la 7._o so_o be_v there_o other_o sin_n there_o reckon_v up_o vers_n 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o to_o which_o be_v reserve_v the_o blakness_n of_o darkness_n for_o ever_o vers_fw-la 13._o but_o some_o say_v that_o these_o be_v all_o but_o pardon_v upon_o condition_n then_o the_o redemption_n be_v neither_o actual_a and_o real_a nor_o complete_a but_o a_o poor_a may_v be_v and_o a_o may_v be_v may_v not_o be_v and_o how_o can_v such_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v forgive_v or_o blot_v out_o and_o casten_z behind_o god_n back_n and_o into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o sea_n do_v christ_n know_v whether_o or_o not_o this_o condition_n will_v be_v perform_v if_o not_o than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o omniscient_a god_n if_o he_o know_v that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o great_a part_n how_o can_v we_o imagine_v that_o he_o will_v notwithstanding_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n to_o purchase_v a_o remission_n for_o they_o and_o how_o can_v we_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v purchase_v a_o pardon_n to_o all_o and_o let_v the_o event_n hang_v upon_o the_o pendulous_a totter_a will_n of_o a_o sinful_a creature_n but_o as_o to_o that_o condition_n we_o shall_v 20._o propose_v 9_o this_o consideration_n the_o not_o performance_n of_o that_o condition_n be_v no_o doubt_n a_o sin_n and_o if_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o die_v for_o that_o too_o and_o if_o he_o die_v for_o that_o too_o that_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n or_o there_o must_v be_v another_o condition_n imagine_v upon_o performance_n of_o which_o that_o be_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o
the_o way_n and_o the_o non-performance_n of_o this_o condition_n be_v also_o a_o sin_n our_o proposition_n will_v recurre_v upon_o this_o and_o so_o in_o infinitum_fw-la but_o if_o this_o sin_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n it_o can_v prejudge_v they_o of_o the_o pardon_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o thus_o all_o their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v save_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n die_v not_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o final_a unbeleef_n yet_o it_o seem_v th●t_v it_o will_v be_v grant_v that_o he_o die_v even_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o for_o unbelief_n continue_v in_o until_o the_o last_o hour_n of_o a_o man_n life_n but_o not_o for_o that_o last_o act_n which_o yet_o be_v but_o the_o same_o unbelief_n continue_v in_o a_o hour_n long_o and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n bear_v the_o unbelief_n of_o 20_o 40_o 60._o or_o more_o year_n in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o the_o same_o unbelief_n for_o one_o hour_n or_o half_a hour_n yea_o or_o quarter_n of_o a_o hour_n who_o see_v not_o how_o little_a ground_n there_o be_v for_o such_o a_o imagination_n but_o the_o thing_n i_o will_v have_v main_o here_o consider_v be_v this_o that_o for_o who_o sin_n christ_n have_v die_v he_o have_v die_v for_o all_o their_o sin_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o world_n he_o die_v for_o the_o final_a unbelief_n of_o all_o the_o world_n but_o this_o will_v not_o be_v grant_v therefore_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n who_o sin_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o he_o leave_v none_o for_o they_o to_o answer_v for_o for_o he_o be_v a_o complete_a mediator_n and_o be_v sole_a mediator_n if_o he_o die_v for_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o reprobat_fw-la and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n why_o not_o for_o that_o also_o sure_o when_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o christ_n take_v away_o of_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n which_o people_n enjoy_v through_o he_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n except_v he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n esa._n 53_o 5._o the_o lord_n lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o vers_n 6._o or_o m●de_v the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o to_o meet_v on_o he_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o any_o exception_n here_o when_o he_o be_v strike_v for_o transgression_n vers_fw-la 9_o and_o his_o soul_n be_v make_v a_o offering_n for_o sin_n v_o 10._o be_v there_o any_o appearance_n of_o the_o exception_n of_o any_o one_o sin_n when_o he_o bear_v their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n vers_n 11_o 12._o what_o intimation_n be_v give_v of_o a_o exception_n of_o any_o yea_o if_o this_o exception_n be_v to_o be_v make_v which_o will_v null_n and_o destroy_v all_o what_o consolation_n can_v the_o declaration_n of_o this_o redemption_n remission_n of_o sin_n yield_v unto_o poor_a sinner_n col._n 1_o 14._o ephes._n 1_o 7._o when_o the_o lord_n make_v he_o to_o be_v sin_n for_o we_o be_v it_o only_o in_o part_n how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5_o 21_o be_v the_o lord_n in_o christ_n reconcil_n the_o world_n unto_o himself_o not_o impute_v only_a part_n of_o their_o trespass_n to_o they_o but_o the_o impute_v of_o one_o sin_n will_v mar_v the_o reconciliation_n for_o ever_o be_v not_o final_a unbeleef_n a_o dead_a work_n doubtless_o yet_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n purge_v conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n heb._n 9_o 14._o do_v the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n so_o sanctify_v as_o to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o to_o leave_v the_o most_o defile_v spot_n of_o all_o untaken_v away_o how_o can_v heal_a come_v by_o his_o stripe_n if_o he_o bear_v but_o part_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n see_v final_a unbeleef_n alone_o will_v mar_v all_o for_o where_o that_o be_v there_o be_v no_o come_n to_o god_n imaginable_a but_o moreover_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o blood_n jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 1_o 7._o and_o that_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n there_o be_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n who_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 2_o vers_fw-la 1_o 2._o and_o so_o must_v be_v for_o all_o sin_n otherways_o there_o be_v little_a ground_n of_o comfort_n here_o and_o it_o be_v foretell_v by_o daniel_n chap._n 9_o 24._o that_o he_o shall_v make_v a_o end_n of_o sin_n and_o finish_v the_o transgression_n and_o so_o bring-in_a everlasting_a righteousness_n do_v this_o admit_v of_o exception_n and_o of_o such_o a_o exception_n as_o will_v unavoidable_o make_v all_o null_a no_o certane_o but_o you_o will_v ask_v of_o i_o if_o i_o think_v that_o christ_n do_v die_v for_o final_a unbelief_n i_o answ._n not_o for_o i_o judge_v it_o be_v the_o sin_n only_o of_o reprobate_n who_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o i_o judge_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o die_v for_o any_o sin_n of_o reprobat_n but_o this_o i_o hold_v and_o have_v clear_v that_o for_o who_o sin_n soever_o christ_n have_v die_v he_o have_v die_v for_o all_o their_o sin_n and_o because_o he_o have_v not_o die_v for_o final_a unbeleef_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o die_v for_o any_o sin_n of_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o this_o and_o as_o for_o his_o own_o he_o die_v to_o prevent_v their_o fall_n into_o and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o this_o sin_n for_o he_o die_v to_o bring_v they_o unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n that_o they_o may_v be_v sanctify_v and_o live_v unto_o righteousness_n be_v make_v righteous_a yea_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n as_o be_v clear_a 1_o pet._n 2_o 24._o gal._n 4_o 4._o heb._n 10_o 10._o 2_o cor._n 5_o 21._o 1_o pet._n 3_o 18._o rom._n 5_o 19_o what_o then_o will_v this_o quaker_n say_v to_o this_o final_a unbeleef_n be_v certain_o a_o sin_n and_o christ_n either_o die_v for_o it_o or_o not_o if_o he_o die_v for_o it_o than_o it_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o no_o man_n charge_n or_o christ_n death_n be_v of_o no_o value_n if_o he_o die_v not_o for_o it_o he_o die_v not_o for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o al●_n man_n but_o at_o most_o for_o some_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n and_o if_o that_o be_v all_o no_o man_n can_v thereby_o be_v save_v for_o one_o sin_n be_v enough_o to_o procure_v damnation_n 21._o moreover_o 10_o we_o find_v the_o person_n for_o who_o this_o price_n of_o blood_n be_v lay_v down_o design_v more_o particular_o and_o the_o object_n of_o this_o redemption_n restrict_v and_o so_o it_o can_v not_o be_v for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v for_o many_o esai_n 53_o 11._o math._n 20_o 28._o and_o 26.28_o mark_v 10_o 45._o heb._n 9_o 28._o and_o what_o these_o many_o be_v be_v abundant_o declare_v in_o other_o scripture_n where_o they_o be_v call_v christ_n sheep_n joh._n 10_o 15._o christ_n people_n mat._n 1_o 21._o his_o people_n who_o according_a to_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v he_o shall_v save_v from_o their_o enemy_n and_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o that_o hate_v they_o to_o perform_v the_o mercy_n promise_v to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o remember_v his_o holy_a covenant_n the_o oath_n which_o he_o swear_v to_o father_n abraham_n that_o he_o will_v grant_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n they_o may_v serve_v he_o without_o fear_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n luk._n 1_o 68_o 70_o 71_o 72_o 73_o 74_o 75._o his_o church_n ephes._n 5_o 25_o act._n 20_o 28._o his_o body_n ephes._n 5_o 23._o the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o joh._n 11_o 52._o son_n sanctify_a brethren_n the_o child_n that_o god_n give_v he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n heb._n 2_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 16_o 17._o they_o be_v the_o sheep_n that_o shall_v infallible_o believe_v because_o sheep_n joh._n 10_o 26._o and_o who_o christ_n know_v and_o of_o who_o he_o be_v know_v vers_n 14_o and_o such_o as_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n vers_n 16._o and_o follow_v he_o vers_n 27._o to_o who_o he_o will_v give_v eternal_a life_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v and_o who_o be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o his_o father_n vers_fw-la 28.29_o and_o the_o elect_a 2_o tim_n 2_o 10_o he_o be_v bread_n
give_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n of_o they_o that_o the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o and_o shall_v come_v to_o he_o joh._n 6_o 33_o 37._o they_o be_v these_o concern_v who_o the_o father_n will_n be_v as_o be_v give_v of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o but_o raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver_fw-la 38_o 39_o 40._o the_o redeem_a one_o that_o be_v number_v by_o god_n 144000._o and_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o lamb_n revel_v 14_o 3_o 4_o 5._o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o who_o the_o lord_n know_v for_o his_o 2_o tim._n 2_o 19_o and_o be_v enroll_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n revel_v 13_o 8._o and_o 20_o 15._o see_v other_o particularity_n psal._n 87_o 5._o esai_n 43_o 1._o and_o 49_o 12._o and_o 19_o 18.24_o 25._o zeph_n 3_o 10._o so_o be_v they_o design_v to_o be_v these_o for_o who_o god_n be_v and_o who_o shall_v have_v unquestionable_o all_o thing_n the_o elect_n who_o shall_v be_v justify_v who_o shall_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n more_o than_o conqueror_n rom._n 8_o 31_o 32_o 33_o 34_o 37_o 38_o 39_o these_o with_o who_o the_o covenant_n shall_v be_v confirm_v dan._n 9_o 27._o the_o redeem_v out_o of_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n and_o make_v king_n and_o priest_n revel_v 5_o 9_o 10._o 22._o further_a 11_o if_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o person_n how_o come_v it_o that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o actual_o pardon_v it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o christ_n death_n be_v not_o a_o satisfactory_a price_n nor_o that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o if_o then_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n mat._n 26_o 28._o be_v not_o all_o these_o sin_n pardon_v virtual_o and_o fundamental_o or_o shall_v they_o not_o all_o actual_o be_v pardon_v in_o due_a time_n if_o it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v be_v pardon_v upon_o condition_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o if_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o be_v equal_o pay_v for_o and_o equal_o in_o a_o virtual_a manner_n discharge_v in_o christ_n being_n actual_o discharge_v from_o that_o debt_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o actual_a disharge_n depend_v upon_o the_o uncertain_a condition_n of_o man_n will_n man_n who_o willing_o perform_v the_o condition_n shall_v praise_v himself_o for_o the_o actual_a pardon_n and_o none_o else_o for_o christ_n do_v no_o more_o for_o he_o as_o to_o the_o actual_a pardon_n than_o for_o other_o who_o never_o shall_v be_v bless_v with_o actual_a forgiveness_n and_o yet_o forgiveness_n be_v hold_v forth_o as_o a_o special_a act_n of_o free_a grace_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n ephes._n 1_o 7._o moreover_o as_o to_o that_o condition_n whether_o do_v christ_n purchase_v it_o or_o not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o purchase_v it_o than_o man_n be_v not_o behold_v to_o christ_n for_o the_o condition_n be_v it_o faith_n or_o what_o you_o will_v it_o be_v no_o purchase_a mercy_n but_o man_n be_v behold_v to_o his_o good_a lord_n free_a will_n for_o it_o and_o so_o he_o may_v sacrifice_v to_o his_o own_o net_n and_o sing_v glory_n to_o himself_o for_o make_v himself_o to_o differ_v and_o for_o obtain_v to_o himself_o actual_a remission_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o consequent_o blessedness_n rom._n 4_o v._n 6_o 7_o 8._o for_o have_v not_o his_o own_o well_o dispose_v lord_n free_a will_n perform_v that_o condition_n all_o that_o christ_n do_v have_v never_o more_o advantage_v he_o than_o it_o do_v other_o that_o perish_v if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o grace_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n though_o it_o be_v not_o purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v free_o give_v by_o god_n to_o who_o he_o will_n i_o answer_v not_o to_o insist_v here_o on_o the_o proof_n of_o faith_n be_v purchase_v by_o christ_n because_o we_o shall_v clear_v it_o afterward_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o assign_v for_o the_o condition_n i_o will_v inquire_v whether_o christ_n know_v to_o who_o this_o grace_n will_v be_v give_v or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o we_o must_v deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n if_o he_o know_v why_o shall_v we_o suppose_v that_o he_o will_v lay_v down_o his_o life_n equal_o for_o all_o when_o he_o know_v before_o hand_n that_o many_o shall_v never_o get_v grace_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o his_o death_n shall_v redound_v to_o their_o actual_a pardon_n and_o justification_n what_o end_n or_o what_o advantage_n can_v we_o imagine_v of_o such_o a_o universal_a redemption_n 23._o 12._o if_o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o actual_a pardon_n &_o justification_n be_v grant_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v purchase_v by_o christ_n then_o either_o all_o shall_v certain_o be_v pardon_v &_o justify_v or_o christ_n have_v not_o purchase_v a_o equal_a common_a &_o possible_a redemption_n to_o all_o and_o every_o man_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a &_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o all_o shall_v certain_o be_v pardon_v and_o actual_o justify_v for_o then_o all_o shall_v be_v glorify_v that_o the_o condition_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v purchase_v by_o christ_n who_o can_v deny_v see_v he_o be_v express_o call_v the_o author_n of_o faith_n heb._n 12_o 2._o and_o a_o prince_n exalt_v to_o give_v repentance_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n act_n 5.31_o so_o that_o as_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v found_v upon_o his_o death_n as_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n so_o must_v repentance_n be_v and_o christ_n as_o a_o exalt_a prince_n and_o saviour_n have_v this_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o his_o own_o purchase_a legacy_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v and_o insure_v by_o his_o death_n unto_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n upon_o his_o death_n and_o satisfaction_n make_v in_o his_o death_n have_v he_o gote_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n a_o power_n to_o quicken_v who_o he_o will_v mat._n 28_o ●8_o joh._n 5_o 21_o 22_o 27._o phil._n ●_o 9_o 10_o hence_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v complete_a in_o he_o col_fw-fr 2_o 10._o &_o to_o be_v bless_v with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o ce●estials_n to_o which_o no_o doubt_n faith_n and_o repentance_n do_v belong_v in_o he_o ephes._n 1_o 3_o be_v it_o not_o from_o hence_o that_o the_o divine_a power_n have_v give_v unto_o we_o all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v unto_o life_n and_o godliness_n 2_o pet._n 1_o 3_o nay_o paul_n tell_v we_o express_o phil._n 1_o 29._o that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o we_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o christ_n to_o believe_v on_o he_o and_o certain_o there_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 1_o 20._o all_o the_o blessing_n contain_v in_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v sure_a by_o his_o death_n who_o be_v the_o surety_n of_o this_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7_o 2d_o and_o this_o testament_n be_v to_o have_v force_n by_o his_o death_n heb._n 9_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o and_o the_o new_a heart_n and_o heart_n of_o flesh_n be_v promise_v in_o the_o covenant_n and_o comprehend_v faith_n and_o repentance_n they_o be_v some_o of_o his_o law_n which_o he_o have_v also_o promise_v to_o write_v in_o the_o heart_n jer._n 31_o 33._o heb._n 8_o 10._o ezech._n 11_o 19_o 20._o &_o 36_o 26_o 27._o we_o have_v moreover_o see_v that_o sanctification_n and_o holiness_n from_o which_o faith_n &_o repentance_n can_v be_v separate_v be_v purchase_v by_o christ_n and_o intend_v in_o his_o death_n whence_o he_o be_v make_v of_o god_n unto_o we_o sanctification_n 1_o cor._n 1_o 30._o if_o it_o be_v not_o purchase_v by_o christ_n how_o come_v we_o by_o it_o be_v it_o a_o thing_n in_o our_o power_n and_o a_o act_n of_o our_o own_o free_a will_n then_o as_o i_o say_v before_o we_o be_v behold_v to_o ourselves_o for_o faith_n and_o all_o that_o follow_v upon_o it_o and_o then_o farewell_n all_o prayer_n for_o faith_n and_o repentance_n &_o all_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o it_o this_o be_v pure_a pelagianism_n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n ephes._n 2_o 8._o and_o a_o consequent_a of_o elect_a love_n i_o answer_v all_o the_o fruit_n of_o election_n which_o be_v to_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o be_v procure_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o all_o be_v convey_v to_o we_o in_o a_o covenant_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o mediator_n and_o surety_n and_o with_o christ_n he_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n rom._n 8_o 32._o and_o we_o be_v bless_v in_o he_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n according_a as_o he_o have_v choose_v
christ_n be_v not_o send_v to_o all_o universal_o for_o he_o be_v to_o reign_v over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n luk._n 1_o 13._o and_o be_v to_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n mat._n 1_o 21._o and_o that_o not_o possible_o only_a but_o real_o luk._n 1_o 69_o 70_o 71_o 72_o 73_o 74._o which_o be_v not_o verify_v of_o all_o universal_o but_o of_o all_o his_o people_n who_o be_v in_o due_a time_n deliver_v actual_o and_o real_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o make_v to_o serve_v he_o without_o fear_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o have_v actual_a remission_n of_o their_o sin_n through_o the_o tender_a mercy_n of_o our_o god_n whereby_o the_o day_n spring_n from_o on_o high_a have_v visit_v they_o etc._n etc._n vers_fw-la 74_o 75_o 77_o 78_o 79._o 49._o nor_o say_v he_o pag._n 70._o have_v the_o angel_n have_v occasion_n to_o have_v praise_v &_o say_v on_o the_o earth_n peace_n and_o goodwill_n towards_o man_n answ._n much_o less_o have_v they_o sing_v thus_o if_o all_o the_o salvation_n that_o christ_n bring_v with_o he_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a possibility_n a_o may_v be_v that_o may_v never_o have_v be_v but_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o song_n be_v clear_a with_o we_o because_o christ_n be_v certain_o to_o have_v a_o choose_a flock_n a_o redeem_a company_n out_o of_o all_o the_o coast_n &_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o shall_v be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n and_o enjoy_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o good_a will_n towards_o they_o he_o alleige_v next_o christ_n commission_n mark_n 16_o vers_fw-la 15._o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n add_v that_o of_o paul_n col._n 1_o 28._o but_o 1._o this_o will_v no_o more_o prove_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o man_n than_o for_o devil_n &_o beast_n for_o they_o be_v creature_n 2._o christ_n commission_n now_o when_o the_o partition_n wall_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 2_o 14._o be_v enlarge_v he_o former_o do_v limit_v they_o to_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n &_o express_o forbid_v they_o to_o go_v into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o gentile_n mat._n 10_o 5_o 6._o but_o now_o he_o send_v they_o through_o the_o world_n to_o preach_v to_o all_o indefinite_o without_o discrimination_n mat._n 28_o 19_o because_o the_o choose_a who_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o preach_v be_v scatter_v through_o the_o nation_n 3._o how_o will_v this_o than_o prove_v a_o universal_a redemption_n when_o the_o very_a enlarge_n of_o the_o commission_n do_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a as_o ●o_o the_o age_n precede_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o grant_n of_o this_o enlarge_a commission_n 4._o from_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o indefinite_o by_o man_n who_o know_v not_o the_o hide_a counsel_n &_o purpose_n of_o god_n to_o infer_v a_o universal_a redemption_n be_v no_o rational_a way_n of_o argue_v man_n must_v preach_v to_o many_o indefinite_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n who_o the_o lord_n may_v have_v among_o they_o as_o paul_n do_v at_o corinth_n where_o the_o lord_n have_v much_o people_n act._n 18_o 10._o and_o sometime_o we_o find_v the_o lord_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o some_o act._n 16_o 7._o 50._o but_o say_v he_o far_o the_o gospel_n invit_v all_o &_o will_v god_n m●ck_v any_o who_o he_o invit_v and_o call_v to_o come_v to_o he_o sure_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o die_v for_o all_o and_o make_v salvation_n possible_a to_o all_o minister_n shall_v be_v send_v out_o to_o mock_v people_n when_o they_o be_v send_v to_o command_v all_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o he_o large_o discour●eth_v and_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o untruth_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o command_a of_o all_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o while_o as_o the_o gospel_n command_v such_o to_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v to_o flee_v to_o a_o alsufficient_a saviour_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o sin_n &_o misery_n &_o conviction_n of_o their_o impotency_n to_o save_v themselves_o and_o in_o the_o faith_n that_o there_o be_v not_o another_o name_n give_v among_o man_n by_o which_o we_o must_v be_v save_v act._n 4_o 12._o and_o true_o this_o name_n be_v a_o alsufficient_a name_n there_o be_v herein_o salvation_n for_o all_o that_o will_v come_v and_o none_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v debar_v who_o do_v not_o by_o wilful_a unbelief_n debar_v and_o exclude_v themselves_o for_o thus_o have_v the_o lord_n in_o his_o deep_a wisdom_n contrive_v the_o business_n and_o this_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o proper_o and_o direct_o declare_v the_o secret_a purpose_n of_o god_n for_o secret_a thing_n belong_v not_o to_o we_o but_o unto_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v belong_v to_o we_o deut._n 29_o vers_fw-la 29._o and_o the_o preach_v gospel_n point_v forth_o the_o duty_n of_o such_o to_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o this_o word_n of_o command_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o people_n duty_n and_o not_o the_o hide_a and_o unseen_a purpose_n of_o god_n it_o be_v true_a the_o fix_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o place_n may_v say_v that_o it_o be_v probable_a god_n have_v some_o people_n there_o and_o it_o certain_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o such_o as_o do_v believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o obey_v it_o shall_v be_v save_v because_o of_o the_o fix_a and_o indissoluble_a connexion_n betwixt_o that_o which_o the_o gospel_n require_v and_o salvation_n and_o though_o the_o lord_n send_v his_o servant_n upon_o the_o same_o errand_n that_o he_o send_v esaias_n chap._n 6_o 9_o 10._o and_o that_o christ_n himself_o be_v send_v upon_o joh._n 12_o 37_o 38_o 39_o 40._o and_o paul_n act._n 28_o 25_o 26_o 27._o we_o must_v not_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v mock_v more_o than_o that_o he_o be_v mock_v pharaoh_n when_o he_o send_v moses_n to_o he_o command_v he_o to_o let_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n go_v it_o will_v become_v we_o rather_o to_o adore_v and_o stoop_v and_o this_o may_v satisfy_v for_o a_o answer_n to_o what_o he_o add_v in_o the_o end_n of_o §_o 6._o pag._n 71._o though_o it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o present_a business_n but_o to_o close_v this_o what_o can_v all_o this_o say_v for_o universal_a redemption_n see_v the_o gospel_n &_o the_o minister_n thereof_o be_v not_o send_v to_o all_o and_o every_o person_n in_o every_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o in_o all_o age_n 51._o he_o proceed_v pag._n 71._o §_o 7._o and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o remember_v not_o one_o passage_n of_o scripture_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o die_v for_o all_o and_o it_o may_v suffice_v for_o answer_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o neither_o do_v we_o remember_v one_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n or_o for_o all_o and_o every_o man_n and_o if_o he_o think_v that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v this_o sufficient_o by_o consequence_n we_o have_v show_v above_o that_o the_o scripture_n say_v sufficient_o by_o consequence_n that_o christ_n do_v not_o die_v for_o all_o but_o for_o a_o select_a company_n he_o cit_v 1_o tim._n 2_o 1_o 3_o 4_o 6._o as_o do_v the_o pelagian_n of_o old_a as_o august_n show_v lib._n 4_o contra_fw-la jul._n c._n 8._o enchir._n adlaur_n c._n 103._o &_o lib._n de_fw-fr corrept_v &_o gratia_fw-la c._n 14._o &_o all_o the_o arminian_n of_o late_a and_o after_o some_o discourse_n hereupon_o he_o reason_v thus_o therefrom_o pag._n 72._o for_o whosoever_o we_o may_v pray_v to_o he_o salvation_n be_v possible_a but_o i_o may_v pray_v for_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o in_o the_o world_n therefore_o salvation_n be_v possible_a to_o every_o one_o the_o assumption_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o proposition_n i_o prove_v thus_o no_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o pray_v nor_o may_v he_o pray_v for_o that_o which_o be_v impossible_a but_o every_o man_n be_v command_v to_o pray_v for_o all_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a again_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o pray_v but_o in_o faith_n but_o he_o who_o pray_v for_o what_o be_v impossible_a can_v pray_v in_o faith_n therefore_o again_o what_o god_n will_v that_o be_v not_o impossible_a but_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a final_o for_o who_o christ_n give_v himself_o a_o price_n of_o redemption_n to_o they_o salvation_n be_v possible_a but_o christ_n give_v himself_o a_o price_n of_o redemption_n for_o all_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n 52._o
world_n and_o why_o because_o the_o word_n world_n be_v frequent_o take_v for_o unbeliever_n for_o which_o he_o cit_v many_o passage_n several_a of_o which_o be_v very_o impertinent_a for_o some_o speak_v of_o the_o world_n contain_v not_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n as_o joh._n 17_o 15_o 18._o some_o of_o the_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n as_o mat._n 16_o 26._o 1_o joh._n 2_o 15._o some_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o world_n as_o mat._n 18_o 1●_n joh._n 7.8_o 26._o and_o 18_o 19_o and_o 17_o 20._o other_o speak_v of_o the_o temptation_n and_o other_o accident_n of_o the_o world_n as_o gal._n 6_o 14._o jam._n 1_o 27._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 20._o and_o then_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o world_n be_v here_o distinguish_v from_o believer_n who_o come_v in_o under_o the_o word_n we_o and_o so_o the_o speech_n shall_v be_v redundant_v and_o superfluous_a but_o the_o full_a commentary_n of_o the_o word_n he_o draw_v from_o this_o same_o epistle_n chap._n 5_o 10._o where_o the_o same_o apostle_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o same_o person_n to_o all_o which_o we_o answer_v notwithstanding_o that_o enough_o be_v say_v above_o to_o enervate_a any_o argument_n draw_v from_o hence_o 1._o the_o word_n world_n can_v prove_v nothing_o for_o it_o admit_v of_o so_o many_o various_a acceptation_n not_o to_o mention_v the_o world_n contain_v signify_v sometime_o indefinite_o man_n without_o restriction_n or_o enlairgement_n esai_n 13_o 11._o joh._n 7_o 4._o sometime_o many_o mat._n 18.7_o joh._n 4_o 42._o and_o 12_o 19_o and_o 16_o 8_o and_o 17_o 21._o 1_o cor._n 4_o 9_o revel_v 13_o 3._o sometime_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n rom._n 1_o 8._o and_o 10_o 18._o mat._n 24_o 14._o and_o 26_o 13._o sometime_o the_o roman_a impire_n luk._n 2_o 1._o sometime_o the_o wicked_a and_o sometime_o god_n own_o scatter_v up_o and_o down_o the_o world_n psal._n 22_o 27._o joh._n 3_o 16._o and_o 6_o 36_o 51._o rome_n 4_o 13._o and_o 11_o 12_o 15._o 2_o cor._n 5_o 19_o col._n 1_o 6._o 2._o nor_o can_v the_o phrase_n whole_a world_n or_o all_o the_o world_n prove_v any_o thing_n for_o that_o also_o be_v various_o take_v and_o never_o except_o once_o rom._n 3_o 19_o where_o it_o be_v in_o a_o necessary_a matter_n take_v for_o all_o and_o every_o individual_a person_n see_v revel_n 3_o 10._o and_o 12_o 9_o and_o 13_o 3._o col._n 1_o vers_fw-la 6._o luk._n 2_o 1._o and_o in_o other_o place_n it_o do_v not_o denote_v man_n 3._o it_o be_v but_o rational_a to_o suppose_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n here_o denote_v no_o more_o than_o the_o like_a expression_n elsewhere_o to_o wit_n all_o nation_n all_o flesh_n all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o do_v show_v above_o that_o these_o use_v in_o the_o matter_n whereof_o we_o be_v now_o speak_v can_v not_o be_v take_v in_o their_o most_o comprehensive_a sense_n otherways_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o all_o and_o every_o man_n shall_v have_v grace_n and_o glory_n see_v for_o instance_n psal._n 22_o 27._o and_o 72_o 11._o and_o 93_o 3._o but_o peter_n tell_v we_o how_o such_o aught_o to_o be_v interpret_v act._n 2_o 17._o expound_v that_o universal_a joel_n 2_o 18._o 4._o that_o there_o must_v here_o be_v a_o restriction_n himself_o must_v grant_v otherwise_o he_o must_v bring-in_a the_o devil_n and_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o they_o and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o who_o be_v man_n upon_o earth_n because_o the_o word_n world_n in_o its_o universal_a extent_n will_v comprehend_v they_o also_o especial_o consider_v how_o the_o second_o place_n may_v contribute_v to_o strengthen_v this_o supposition_n see_v the_o devil_n lie_v in_o evil_n but_o if_o he_o take_v liberty_n to_o restrick_n it_o to_o man_n he_o must_v not_o be_v offend_v with_o we_o for_o take_v the_o same_o liberty_n to_o restrick_n it_o to_o a_o certane_v sort_n of_o man_n as_o elsewhere_o it_o be_v restrick_v to_o signify_v wicked_a man_n so_o here_o it_o may_v signify_v believer_n or_o the_o elect_n as_o the_o like_a phrase_n of_o all_o nation_n import_v esai_n 66_o 18._o and_o 2_o 2._o and_o elsewhere_o 5._o and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v restrick_v so_o here_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o very_a word_n propitiation_n for_o if_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o actual_a application_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n according_a to_o the_o parallel_a place_n rom._n 3_o 25._o where_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v by_o faith_n than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o believer_n only_o be_v intend_v here_o and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a discourse_n be_v intend_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o believer_n against_o incident_a sin_n and_o not_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o other_o and_o if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o impetration_n even_o then_o there_o must_v be_v a_o restriction_n to_o such_o as_o either_o be_v or_o through_o grace_n shall_v be_v make_v believer_n for_o only_o such_o as_o we_o do_v show_v above_o be_v they_o for_o who_o christ_n be_v a_o propitiation_n shall_v christ_n be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n for_o the_o wicked_a reprobate_n in_o this_o word_n propitiation_n there_o be_v a_o allusion_n to_o the_o cover_n of_o the_o ark_n and_o mercy_n seat_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 9_o 5._o which_o signify_v the_o cover_n of_o the_o law_n as_o a_o rigid_a covenant_n of_o work_n import_v reconciliation_n and_o acceptation_n with_o god_n through_o christ_n the_o true_a propitiation_n or_o mercy_n seat_n rom._n 3_o 25._o who_o propitiate_v for_o sin_n heb._n 2_o 17._o and_o so_o expiate_v they_o for_o upon_o t●is_n follow_v remission_n mat._n 26_o 28._o rom._n 3_o 25._o and_o 5_o 9_o ephes._n 1_o 7._o col._n 1_o 14._o heb._n 9_o 22._o 1_o joh._n 1_o 7._o 1_o pet._n 1_o 2._o revel_v 1_o 5._o and_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o world_n or_o that_o all_o this_o import_v only_o a_o possible_a reconciliation_n and_o remission_n or_o that_o it_o be_v for_o such_o as_o shall_v themselves_o suffer_v the_o vengeance_n of_o eternal_a fire_n for_o ever_o let_v quaker_n believe_v this_o if_o they_o will_v for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v 6._o why_o the_o apostle_n shall_v use_v this_o general_a term_n in_o a_o restricted_a sense_n we_o former_o give_v a_o reason_n see_v §_o 59_o and_o 60._o this_o apostle_n converse_v most_o with_o jew_n gal._n 2_o 9_o write_v this_o epistle_n unto_o they_o as_o be_v most_o probable_a they_o have_v first_o have_v the_o offer_n make_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v hint_v in_o this_o same_o chapter_n vers_fw-la 7._o and_o so_o he_o use_v the_o word_n world_n in_o a_o sense_n which_o they_o understand_v well_o to_o wit_n as_o import_v the_o gentile_n who_o he_o will_v hereby_o insinuate_v to_o be_v now_o taken-in_a and_o no_o more_o stranger_n and_o foreigner_n the_o partition_n wall_n be_v break_v down_o and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o tautology_n in_o the_o word_n when_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n who_o be_v believer_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n among_o the_o gentile_n who_o be_v express_o call_v the_o world_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n rom._n 11_o 15._o or_o of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n through_o the_o world_n as_o joh._n 11_o 51_o 52._o where_o this_o same_o apostle_n give_v we_o the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o this_o word_n 7._o as_o for_o 1_o joh._n 5_o 13._o it_o be_v manifest_a how_o impertinent_a that_o be_v to_o this_o purpose_n and_o if_o this_o man_n will_v urge_v it_o in_o its_o latitude_n he_o shall_v make_v the_o apostle_n contradict_v himself_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v take_v in_o believer_n and_o whereas_o he_o think_v the_o word_n world_n use_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o epistle_n must_v necessary_o import_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n he_o show_v himself_o a_o stranger_n in_o the_o scripture_n where_o several_a time_n a_o antanaclasis_n or_o the_o same_o word_n have_v distinct_a signification_n be_v use_v not_o only_o in_o the_o same_o book_n or_o epistle_n but_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n pronunce_v with_o the_o same_o breath_n as_o joh._n 1_o vers_fw-la 10._o and_o 3_o vers_fw-la 6_o 17._o mat._n 8_o v._n 22._o 1_o joh._n 3_o v._n 16._o to_o name_n no_o more_o 65._o he_o add_v some_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n whether_o of_o his_o own_o gather_n or_o not_o i_o think_v it_o not_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o search_v but_o hereby_o he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o what_o be_v say_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o elder_a
light_n for_o this_o effect_n which_o consideration_n moderate_v our_o astonishment_n at_o the_o boldness_n and_o confidence_n of_o the_o q●akers_n and_o particular_o of_o this_o their_o patron_n in_o this_o matter_n 4._o when_o he_o come_v to_o explain_v this_o proposition_n pag._n 82._o §_o 12._o he_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o day_n and_o time_n of_o visitation_n that_o god_n have_v grant_v unto_o all_o man_n and_o negative_o he_o say_v he_o do_v not_o mean_a every_o man_n term_n of_o life_n though_o as_o to_o some_o as_o for_o example_n the_o penitent_a thief_n it_o may_v extend_v so_o far_o but_o wherein_o consist_v this_o visitation_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o be_v here_o to_o be_v explain_v we_o must_v it_o seem_v wait_v for_o his_o meaning_n till_o a_o fit_a season_n afterward_o a_o day_n of_o gracious_a visitation_n and_o invitation_n in_o the_o gospel_n offer_v we_o acknowledge_v but_o what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o heathen_n that_o can_v go_v under_o this_o name_n i_o be_o yet_o to_o learn_v know_v no_o dispensation_n of_o god_n that_o can_v be_v call_v a_o day_n of_o visitation_n in_o reference_n to_o salvation_n but_o what_o it_o be_v in_o and_o through_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_n and_o which_o therefore_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v grant_v to_o such_o as_o never_o hear_v of_o it_o 5._o then_o he_o tell_v we_o positive_o that_o it_o be_v only_o such_o a_o time_n in_o which_o god_n be_v sufficient_o exoner_v of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o every_o man_n which_o may_v be_v long_o to_o some_o and_o short_a to_o other_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o god_n according_a to_o his_o wisdom_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v have_v any_o ground_n of_o quarrel_v with_o god_n i_o be_o pass_v all_o doubt_n but_o if_o this_o man_n think_v that_o in_o some_o case_n god_n be_v in_o hazard_n to_o be_v impannele_v by_o man_n it_o concern_v he_o to_o make_v this_o matter_n more_o plain_a to_o we_o who_o see_v no_o such_o hazard_n and_o can_v apprehend_v no_o such_o danger_n if_o he_o learn_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n he_o will_v do_v well_o to_o acquaint_v we_o therewith_o if_o he_o have_v it_o only_o by_o revelation_n i_o be_o not_o like_a to_o bottom_n my_o faith_n upon_o his_o say_a or_o suppose_a revelation_n sure_o i_o think_v he_o shall_v have_v give_v we_o some_o other_o ground_n for_o all_o this_o difference_n that_o god_n make_v among_o man_n grant_v to_o some_o a_o long_a day_n and_o to_o other_o a_o short_a day_n of_o visitation_n than_o be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n for_o he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o we_o lay_v this_o down_o for_o a_o ground_n why_o some_o get_v no_o such_o day_n of_o visitation_n i_o mean_v as_o to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o this_o will_v not_o satisfy_v he_o and_o other_o of_o his_o kind_n who_o take_v upon_o they_o with_o no_o small_a boldness_n to_o tell_v we_o of_o rule_n of_o justice_n of_o their_o own_o imagine_v which_o god_n must_v not_o transgress_v what_o if_o some_o say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o just_a and_o righteous_a enough_o if_o he_o grant_v not_o to_o all_o a_o equal_o long_a day_n of_o visitation_n will_v he_o think_v to_o satisfy_v they_o with_o say_v so_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o god_n according_a to_o his_o wisdom_n if_o so_o he_o must_v be_v very_o partial_a who_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o this_o answer_n out_o of_o our_o mouth_n when_o sure_a it_o may_v sufficient_o serve_v to_o stop_v his_o mouth_n see_v it_o can_v not_o help_v he_o to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o other_o case_n god_n shall_v be_v less_o unjust_a for_o in_o no_o degree_n how_o small_a so_o ever_o can_v god_n be_v unjust_a but_o all_o this_o be_v but_o what_o some_o papist_n say_v who_o will_v not_o have_v this_o sufficient_a grace_n always_o at_o hand_n but_o say_v that_o some_o sin_n it_o away_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o bellarmin_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr grat._n &_o lib._n arb._n 6._o what_o become_v of_o they_o after_o this_o day_n he_o say_v they_o may_v live_v after_o it_o but_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n for_o they_o and_o god_n suffer_v they_o to_o be_v obdure_v as_o a_o just_a judgement_n for_o their_o infidelity_n and_o then_o he_o raise_v up_o such_o as_o instrument_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o make_v they_o his_o rod_n against_o other_o but_o 1._o may_v it_o not_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o such_o after_o that_o day_n may_v hear_v the_o gospel_n preach_v no_o doubt_n he_o will_v say_v yea_o be_v not_o then_o the_o lord_n mock_v they_o when_o he_o invit_v they_o to_o repentance_n &_o salvation_n after_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o repent_v &_o be_v save_v if_o not_o why_o object_v he_o this_o against_o our_o doctrine_n of_o reprobation_n 2._o why_o be_v there_o no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n be_v it_o impossible_a for_o god_n to_o give_v they_o grace_v or_o have_v their_o free_a will_n goat_n such_o a_o crake_v or_o such_o a_o bias_n as_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o run_v right_a then_o they_o have_v in_o that_o case_n lose_v all_o free_a will_n for_o his_o master_n the_o jesuit_n &_o arminian_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o free_a will_n which_o can_v either_o will_n or_o will_v as_o it_o please●h_v even_o all_o thing_n requisite_a be_v present_a and_o if_o there_o be_v not_o free_a will_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o as_o they_o say_v but_o necessity_n &_o necessity_n take_v away_o all_o sin_n &_o all_o conscience_n of_o sin_n 3._o he_o say_v god_n suffer_v they_o to_o be_v obdure_v and_o be_v this_o all_o the_o scripture_n speak_v more_o active_o of_o the_o matter_n tell_v we_o &_o that_o frequent_o too_o that_o go●_n harden_v the_o heart_n of_o pharaoh_n see_v exod._n 7._o &_o 8._o &_o 9_o &_o 10._o &_o that_o he_o harden_v who_o he_o will_v rom._n 9_o 18._o 4._o but_o whether_o be_v they_o obdure_v before_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n be_v at_o a_o end_n or_o after_o if_o before_o then_o while_o they_o be_v obdure_v salvation_n be_v possible_a if_o after_o than_o their_o day_n of_o visitation_n end_v before_o they_o be_v abdure_v &_o then_o i_o will_v ask_v if_o sin_n procure_v this_o finish_n of_o the_o day_n of_o their_o visitation_n or_o not_o and_o what_o sin_n it_o be_v see_v it_o be_v not_o hardness_n of_o heart_n be_v it_o the_o sin_n of_o infidelity_n but_o then_o see_v person_n be_v guilty_a of_o that_o at_o the_o first_o hear_v of_o the_o gospel_n &_o not_o obey_v &_o believe_v either_o this_o day_n end_v with_o the_o first_o proclamation_n of_o peace_n in_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v false_a see_v many_o be_v and_o may_v be_v long_a unbeliever_n under_o the_o drop_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o after_o many_o year_n get_v grace_n to_o believe_v or_o not_o and_o then_o we_o will_v fain_o know_v when_o 5._o by_o his_o mention_v of_o infidelity●ere_o ●ere_z as_o the_o sin_n procure_v god_n permission_n of_o obduration_n he_o seem_v to_o import_v that_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n call_v for_o faith_n an●_n i_o wish_v he_o have_v explain_v to_o we_o what_o he_o understand_v by_o faith_n and_o what_o be_v the_o object_n and_o what_o be_v the_o act_n of_o this_o faith_n for_o hithertil_a i_o can_v observe_v nothing_o say_v by_o he_o that_o may_v inform_v i_o 6._o but_o how_o can_v infidelity_n be_v charge_v upon_o such_o as_o never_o hear_v the_o gospel_n do_v the_o scripture_n any_o where_o charge_n infidelity_n upon_o such_o as_o live_v without_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n 7._o when_o the_o lord_n give_v up_o the_o gentile_n to_o uncleanness_n to_o vile_a affection_n and_o to_o a_o reprobat_fw-la mind_n rom._n 1_o 24_o 26_o 28._o which_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v think_v to_o be_v equivalent_a unto_o the_o lord_n suffer_v they_o to_o be_v obdure_v as_o he_o speak_v we_o hear_v that_o it_o be_v for_o other_o sin_n than_o want_v of_o faith_n or_o for_o not_o improve_n the_o day_n of_o visitation_n 8._o what_o the_o last_o clause_n can_v import_v or_o for_o what_o end_n it_o be_v adduce_v i_o can_v well_o imagine_v only_o i_o gather_v out_o of_o it_o and_o the_o precede_a word_n that_o he_o can_v but_o say_v that_o god_n punish_v sin_n with_o sin_n and_o use_v sinful_a man_n act_v sin_n as_o his_o instrument_n &_o as_o a_o road_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o so_o must_v will_v that_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o world_n by_o his_o permission_n which_o be_v what_o our_o divine_n say_v though_o on_o all_o occasion_n and_o without_o occasion_n offer_v he_o fall_v soul_n upon_o they_o upon_o this_o
very_a account_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v within_o two_o line_n af●er_v this_o where_o he_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o we_o say_v that_o god_n do_v necessary_o impel_v man_n to_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a untruth_n 9_o in_o this_o case_n what_o become_v of_o god_n will_n &_o intention_n to_o save_v all_o if_o he_o say_v these_o be_v except_v he_o must_v prove_v this_o restriction_n &_o withal_o deny_v his_o universality_n if_o he_o say_v the_o will_n to_o save_v all_o be_v antecedent_n but_o t●is_n will_v be_v consequent_a as_o do_v pelag._n jesuit_n and_o arminian_n he_o must_v then_o say_v that_o god_n will_v be_v real_o alterable_a and_o alter_v and_o so_o make_v god_n like_a unto_o mutable_a man_n neither_o wife_n enough_o to_o foresee_v what_o will_v be_v nor_o powerful_a enough_o to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v or_o effectuate_v what_o he_o intend_v let_v he_o and_o his_o patron_n see_v to_o this_o 7._o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o apply_v that_o place_n already_o cite_v rom._n 1._o but_o as_o we_o say_v we_o find_v not_o the_o sin_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o up_o to_o a_o reprobat_fw-la mind_n call_v a_o despise_v or_o not_o receive_v of_o the_o offer_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o not_o improve_n of_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n but_o they_o be_v other_o sin_n against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o if_o this_o man_n take_v the_o light_n of_o nature_n for_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o may_v be_v we_o shall_v find_v in_o due_a time_n that_o he_o do_v we_o may_v know_v what_o be_v the_o quaker_n gospel_n to_o prove_v that_o some_o may_v outlive_v this_o day_n he_o adduce_v the_o instance_n of_o esau_n heb._n 12_o 16_o 17._o and_o the_o lamentation_n of_o christ_n over_o jerusalem_n luk._n 19_o 42._o but_o not_o to_o fall_v upon_o the_o business_n yet_o nor_o examine_v his_o ground_n which_o he_o prosecute_v more_o full_o afterward_o i_o will_v only_o ask_v what_o this_o can_v prove_v concern_v a_o day_n of_o visitation_n grant_v to_o all_o and_o every_o per●on_n heathen_a &_o barbarian_a that_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n nor_o of_o his_o come_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o salvation_n through_o he_o will_v he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o posterity_n of_o esau_n have_v as_o fair_a a_o offer_n of_o the_o inheritance_n as_o he_o have_v himself_o and_o that_o all_o the_o jew_n these_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n have_v have_v as_o fair_a a_o day_n of_o visitation_n as_o they_o have_v concern_v who_o christ_n take_v up_o that_o lamentation_n ●f_n not_o where_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o proposition_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o rom._n 11._o that_o the_o natural_a branch_n be_v break_v off_o because_o of_o unbeleef_n and_o cast_v away_o vers_n 15_o 17_o 19_o 20_o 21._o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o be_v not_o mean_v only_o of_o that_o generation_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o vers_fw-la 25._o that_o blindness_n be_v happen_v to_o israel_n until_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v come_v in_o and_o as_o yet_o concern_v the_o gospel_n they_o be_v enemy_n for_o the_o deliverer_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v out_o of_o zion_n to_o turn_v away_o ungodliness_n from_o jacob_n vers_fw-la 26._o esai_n 59_o 20._o they_o lie_v yet_o under_o their_o own_o doom_n which_o their_o forefather_n pronunce_v with_o their_o own_o mouth_n when_o they_o say_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o upon_o our_o child_n and_o under_o that_o wrath_n which_o come_v upon_o they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a 1_o thes._n 2_o v._n 16._o have_v all_o their_o posterity_n have_v as_o a_o fair_a a_o day_n of_o visitation_n or_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o as_o their_o forefather_n have_v before_o that_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n say_v unto_o they_o act_n 13_o 46._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v first_o be_v speak_v unto_o you_o but_o see_v you_o put_v it_o from_o you_o and_o judge_v yourselves_o unworthy_a of_o eternal_a life_n lo_o we_o turn_v to_o the_o gentile_n no_o i_o suppose_v not_o what_o will_v he_o then_o do_v with_o his_o false_a proposition_n 8._o this_o be_v all_o which_o he_o give_v as_o a_o explication_n of_o his_o proposition_n and_o there_o be_v two_o main_a thing_n which_o call_v for_o some_o explication_n and_o which_o he_o have_v leave_v untouched_a the_o one_o thing_n be_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o visitation_n or_o what_o be_v that_o dispensation_n of_o god_n towards_o heathen_n who_o be_v not_o within_o the_o visible_a church_n nor_o never_o hear_v a_o distinct_a sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o of_o a_o crucify_a christ_n the_o captain_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o only_a peace_n maker_n that_o can_v pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o day_n of_o visitation_n that_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n which_o be_v grant_v both_o to_o those_o that_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o to_o those_o that_o be_v without_o and_o if_o not_o what_o be_v the_o difference_n for_o it_o will_v seem_v reasonable_a to_o say_v that_o god_n require_v something_o more_o of_o those_o that_o be_v within_o the_o church_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n than_o of_o such_o as_o be_v without_o it_o and_o whether_o faith_n in_o a_o crucify_a christ_n can_v be_v require_v of_o such_o as_o never_o hear_v of_o he_o the_o other_o thing_n be_v what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o salvation_n be_v possible_a what_o possibility_n be_v this_o which_o he_o mean_v or_o in_o what_o respect_n be_v it_o say_v to_o be_v possible_a be_v his_o meaning_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a through_o god_n grace_n no_o for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v possible_a so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v for_o if_o god_n will_v give_v they_o grace_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v his_o meaning_n then_o must_v be_v that_o god_n have_v lay_v it_o down_o at_o all_o man_n door_n and_o they_o have_v all_o sufficient_a power_n to_o accept_v of_o the_o condition_n or_o do_v what_o be_v requisite_a for_o salvation_n if_o they_o will_v without_o any_o concurrence_n of_o divine_a grace_n or_o any_o new_a supply_n and_o that_o this_o be_v real_o his_o true_a meaning_n we_o shall_v see_v when_o we_o come_v to_o examine_v his_o ground_n 9_o as_o for_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o maintain_v it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 1._o §_o 1._o although_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o providence_n do_v so_o far_o manifest_v the_o goodness_n wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n as_o to_o leave_v man_n unexcusable_a rom._n 2_o 14_o 15._o and_o 1_o 19_o 20_o psal._n 19_o 1_o 2_o 3._o rom._n 1_o 22._o with_o chap_n 2_o 1._o yet_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o give_v that_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o will_n which_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n 1_o cor._n 1_o 11._o &_o 2_o 13_o 14._o therefore_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o diverse_a manner_n to_o reveal_v himself_o and_o to_o declare_v that_o his_o will_n unto_o his_o church_n heb._n 1_o 1._o and_o afterward_o for_o the_o better_a preserve_n and_o propagate_a of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o the_o more_o sure_a establishment_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o satan_n and_o of_o the_o world_n to_o commit_v the_o sa●●e_n whole_o unto_o write_v prov._n 22_o 19_o 20.21_o luk._n 1_o 2_o 4._o rom._n 15_o 4._o mat._n 4_o vers_fw-la 4_o 7_o 10._o esai_n 8_o v._n 19_o 22._o which_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v most_o necessary_a 1_o tim._n 3_o 15._o those_o former_a way_n of_o god_n reveal_v his_o will_n unto_o his_o people_n be_v now_o cease_v heb._n 1_o 1_o 2._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 19_o and_o in_o the_o large_a catechism_n quaest_n 60._o can_v they_o who_o have_v never_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o know_v not_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v save_v by_o their_o live_a according_a to_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n ans._n they_o who_o have_v never_o hear_v the_o gospel_n rom._n 10_o 14._o know_v not_o jesus_n christ_n 2_o thes_n 1_o 8_o 9_o ephes._n 2_o 12._o joh._n 1_o vers_fw-la 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o believe_v not_o in_o he_o can_v be_v save_v joh._n 8_o 24._o mark_n 16_o 16._o be_v they_o never_o so_o diligent_a to_o frame_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n 1_o cor._n 1_o 20_o 24._o or_o the_o law_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o they_o profess_v joh._n 4_o vers_fw-la 22._o rom._n 9_o 31_o 32._o phil._n 3_o 4_o 9_o neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o but_o in_o christ_n alone_o act._n 4_o 12._o who_o be_v the_o saviour_n only_o of_o his_o
be_v challenge_v and_o rebuke_v for_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o of_o christ_n offer_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v never_o reveal_v unto_o they_o for_o as_o man_n as_o have_v sin_v without_o law_n shall_v also_o perish_v without_o law_n rom._n 2_o vers_fw-la 12._o so_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o go●pel_n shall_v p●rish_v without_o the_o gospel_n for_o how_o can_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o how_o can_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v rom._n 10_o 14_o 15._o 3._o what_o blasphemy_n be_v it_o to_o say_v that_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v involve_v in_o this_o thing_n do_v not_o their_o heart_n quake_v at_o such_o expression_n 9_o what_o more_o and_o as_o say_v he_o it_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o be_v not_o hinder_v from_o produce_v its_o own_o natural_a and_o proper_a effect_n christ_n be_v form_v and_o raise_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o which_o the_o scripture_n make_v frequent_a mention_n which_o be_v call_v the_o new_a man_n christ_n in_o the_o saint_n the_o hope_n of_o glory_n this_o be_v that_o inward_a christ_n of_o which_o we_o only_o and_o so_o often_o speak_v and_o who_o we_o declare_v every_o where_o preach_v he_o and_o exhort_v all_o that_o they_o will_v believe_v in_o the_o light_n and_o obey_v it_o that_o they_o may_v know_v christ_n bear_v and_o raise_v up_o in_o themselves_o and_o deliver_v they_o from_o all_o sin_n ans._n here_o be_v a_o short_a and_o clear_a account_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o they_o own_o maintain_v and_o preach_v who_o be_v call_v quaker_n the_o swear_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n grace_n of_o god_n to_o which_o we_o say_v 1._o when_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o former_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o how_o can_v this_o be_v see_v he_o say_v before_o that_o it_o be_v in_o every_o one_o or_o be_v it_o only_o in_o their_o head_n and_o not_o in_o their_o heart_n 2._o do_v ever_o pelagius_n more_o pelagianize_v than_o do_v this_o quaker_n or_o can_v there_o be_v anything_o imagine_v more_o opposite_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o the_o rich_a grace_n of_o god_n therein_o reveal_v than_o to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o every_o man_n heathen_a barbarian_a and_o scythian_a who_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o proper_a and_o natural_a effect_n of_o which_o be_v to_o form_n christ_n in_o the_o soul_n why_o do_v the_o apostle_n paul_n then_o say_v gal._n 4_o 19_o my_o little_a child_n of_o who_o i_o travail_v in_o birth_n again_o until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o you_o what_o need_v the_o apostle_n be_v at_o all_o this_o pain_n and_o pain_n to_o travail_v in_o birth_n for_o that_o which_o can_v have_v be_v wrought_v though_o he_o and_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v have_v never_o be_v hear_v of_o and_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o whole_a gospel_n and_o the_o whole_a grace_n of_o god_n necessary_a to_o the_o form_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o every_o heathen_a that_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o gospel_n can_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n invent_v by_o satan_n more_o contradictory_n to_o that_o gospel_n whereby_o life_n and_o immortality_n be_v bring_v to_o light_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n imaginable_a that_o more_o direct_o cross_v and_o annull_v the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o all_o its_o part_n and_o overturn_v its_o very_a foundation_n 3._o the_o scripture_n indeed_o make_v frequent_a mention_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n manifest_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o effect_n bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n work_v thereby_o but_o it_o no_o where_o say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n by_o nature_n which_o produce_v christ_n in_o the_o soul_n the_o hope_n of_o glory_n as_o its_o proper_a and_o natural_a effect_n nay_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o god_n declare_v the_o plain_a contrary_n when_o it_o not_o only_o show_v we_o the_o blindness_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o every_o man_n till_o it_o be_v renew_v by_o grace_n &_o consequent_o the_o utter_a impotency_n of_o nature_n to_o work_v salvation_n but_o also_o show_v that_o all_o that_o which_o the_o light_n in_o every_o man_n can_v eye_n as_o its_o object_n be_v only_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n &_o providence_n be_v utter_o insufficient_a for_o attain_v this_o end_n because_o those_o work_n can_v declare_v nothing_o of_o the_o gospel_n mystery_n whatever_o it_o may_v do_v of_o the_o law_n hence_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gentile_n live_v without_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v time_n of_o ignorance_n at_o which_o god_n wink_v act._n 17_o 30._o and_o time_n wherein_o god_n suffer_v all_o nation_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n act._n 14_o vers_fw-la 16._o so_o that_o they_o be_v alienate_v from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n ephes._n 4_o 18._o have_v the_o understanding_n darken_v and_o be_v under_o ignorance_n because_o of_o the_o blindness_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n the_o gospel_n do_v every_o where_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o all_o that_o which_o this_o common_a light_n can_v do_v be_v but_o to_o ●nforme_v and_o that_o most_o imperfect_o of_o something_n require_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n it_o speak_v nothing_o of_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v absolute_o requisite_a to_o justification_n and_o salvation_n for_o without_o it_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n heb._n 11_o 6._o and_o by_o it_o we_o be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n the_o only_a mediator_n for_o there_o be_v not_o another_o name_n give_v to_o man_n under_o heaven_n by_o which_o they_o can_v be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o name_n jesus_n act._n 4_o 12._o and_o it_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v god_n and_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n joh._n 17_o 3._o but_o shall_v we_o expatiat_fw-la here_o in_o the_o confutation_n of_o this_o gross_a pelagianism_n we_o shall_v transcribe_v the_o whole_a gospel_n ●_o christ_n in_o saint_n the_o hope_n of_o glory_n be_v not_o bring_v about_o by_o nature_n nor_o by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_o faith_n in_o it_o for_o this_o be_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o mystery_n whereof_o paul_n be_v a_o minister_n according_a to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o god_n and_o which_o have_v be_v hide_v from_o age_n and_o from_o generation_n col._n 1_o 25_o 26_o 27._o and_o wherein_o paul_n labour_v strive_a according_a to_o his_o work_n which_o wrought_v in_o he_o mighty_o vers_fw-la 29._o nay_o before_o they_o be_v reconcile_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n flesh_n through_o death_n they_o be_v alienate_v and_o enemy_n in_o their_o mind_n by_o wicked_a work_n vers_fw-la 21_o 22._o and_o this_o be_v the_o peculiar_a privilege_n of_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v christ_n chap._n 2.6_o and_o be_v in_o he_o circumcise_v with_o the_o circumcision_n make_v without_o hand_n in_o put_v off_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n by_o the_o circumcision_n of_o christ_n &_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o and_o rise_v with_o he_o in_o baptism_n through_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n and_o be_v quicken_v together_o with_o he_o vers_n 11.12.13_o 5._o if_o this_o be_v all_o the_o christ_n which_o they_o preach_v and_o declare_v their_o christ_n and_o theme_n be_v but_o the_o dim_a and_o dark_a light_n of_o nature_n or_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o man_n which_o be_v enmity_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o they_o be_v heathenis●_n preacher_n no_o gospel_n minister_n they_o be_v nature_n teacher_n and_o admirer_n and_o gospel_n subverter_n therefore_o all_o that_o love_v their_o own_o soul_n shall_v keep_v far_o from_o their_o tent_n and_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o most_o desperate_a enemy_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o ever_o satan_n send_v abroad_o in_o the_o world_n to_o destroy_v soul_n 6._o the_o christ_n who_o the_o gospel_n command_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o and_o obey_v be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n man_n our_o immanuel_n the_o promise_a messiah_n the_o fellow_n of_o god_n against_o who_o the_o sword_n of_o justice_n do_v awake_a the_o servant_n of_o god_n who_o be_v incarnate_a god_n make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n who_o grow_v up_o as_o a_o tender_a plant_n as_o a_o root_n out_o of_o a_o dry_a ground_n be_v despise_v and_o reject_v of_o man_n a_o man_n of_o sorrow_n
it_o the_o spirit_n suppose_v that_o paul_n 1_o cor_fw-la 3_o 16._o main_v every_o man_n breathe_v when_o he_o say_v know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o and_o not_o remember_v that_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 8_o 9_o make_v this_o the_o peculiar_a privilege_n of_o the_o saint_n say_v but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o now_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o this_o be_v a_o main_a business_n &_o it_o do_v not_o a_o little_a concern_v he_o and_o his_o cause_n to_o show_v a_o clear_a difference_n if_o there_o be_v any_o betwixt_o his_o opinion_n and_o that_o of_o pelagian_n and_o socinian_o and_o yet_o instead_o of_o do_v this_o he_o run_v out_o in_o extravagancy_n to_o bewild_a his_o reader_n tell_v we_o pag._n 87._o &_o 88_o that_o when_o the_o principle_n or_o rational_a propriety_n exalt_v itself_o to_o reign_v and_o rule_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n above_o the_o seed_n than_o the_o seed_n be_v wound_v we_o know_v that_o corruption_n and_o carnal_a reason_n can_v and_o do_v fight_v and_o strive_v against_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o god_n people_n and_o that_o in_o other_o it_o will_v rise_v up_o against_o the_o truth_n and_o authority_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o imagine_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o either_o of_o these_o in_o person_n live_v in_o heathenism_n without_o god_n and_o without_o christ_n &_o without_o the_o very_a report_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o dream_v wake_n and_o to_o call_v it_o antichrist_n riseing-up_a against_o christ_n as_o he_o do_v call_v it_o be_v but_o a_o notional_a juggle_n to_o hide_v their_o blasphemy_n 21._o he_o go_v on_o to_o tell_v we_o his_o dream_n for_o he_o say_v as_o god_n create_v the_o sun_n to_o give_v light_n by_o day_n and_o the_o moon_n by_o night_n so_o he_o have_v give_v to_o man_n the_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a light_n of_o his_o son_n to_o rule_v they_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n to_o rule_v they_o in_o natural_a thing_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v but_o impertinent_a fancy_n for_o he_o shall_v clear_v to_o we_o here_o how_o that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a light_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o every_o man_n differ_v from_o nature_n or_o the_o natural_a enduement_n which_o accompany_v the_o rational_a soul_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o he_o be_v no_o pelagian_a nor_o socinian_n for_o we_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a light_n of_o christ_n which_o only_o can_v saving_o make_v the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o god_n manifest_a to_o the_o soul_n but_o this_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o but_o peculiar_a to_o god_n peculiar_a one_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v that_o reason_n must_v be_v illuminate_v with_o this_o divine_a light_n before_o it_o can_v right_o take_v up_o spiritual_a thing_n but_o that_o divine_a light_n be_v some_o other_o thing_n than_o the_o light_n within_o 22._o again_o he_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o this_o light_n in_o every_o man_n he_o talk_v of_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o natural_a conscience_n upon_o this_o ground_n that_o the_o natural_a conscience_n can_v be_v defile_v tit._n 1_o 15._o but_o the_o light_n can_v for_o it_o make_v manifest_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v reprove_v ephes._n 5_o 13._o but_o how_o clear_v he_o that_o the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o every_o man_n by_o nature_n can_v be_v defile_v the_o apostle_n in_o that_o cite_a place_n tit._n 1_o 15._o say_v that_o the_o mind_n and_o conscience_n and_o what_o light_n be_v in_o man_n be_v there_o of_o unbeliever_n be_v defile_v and_o as_o for_o that_o light_n mention_v ephes._n 5_o 13._o he_o will_v never_o prove_v that_o be_v a_o light_n common_a to_o all_o man_n especial_o when_o the_o next_o verse_n restrick_v it_o to_o they_o that_o awake_v out_o of_o sleep_n and_o be_v arisen_a from_o the_o dead_a which_o can_v i_o suppose_v be_v say_v of_o all_o man_n &_o get_v this_o light_n from_o christ._n sure_a such_o as_o be_v yet_o asleep_a yea_o dead_a can_v have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n and_o they_o that_o be_v yet_o darkness_n be_v not_o light_a in_o the_o lord_n vers_fw-la 8._o nor_o can_v they_o prove_v what_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o the_o lord_n vers_fw-la 10._o not_o have_v yet_o receive_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n vers_fw-la 9_o so_o that_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o place_n manifest_v this_o man_n detorsion_n thereof_o the_o apostle_n be_v exhort_v they_o who_o sometime_o be_v darkness_n but_o now_o be_v light_n in_o the_o lord_n to_o walk_v as_o child_n of_o light_n and_o to_o reprove_v the_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n vers_fw-la 8_o 11._o show_v what_o be_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o that_o light_n whereof_o they_o be_v now_o make_v partaker_n be_v light_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o darkness_n viz._n to_o discover_v and_o make_v manifest_a such_o unworthy_a action_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v shune_v and_o think_v shame_n of_o what_o he_o add_v of_o conscience_n challenge_v and_o vex_v for_o what_o be_v not_o wrong_v according_a to_o its_o misinformation_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n now_o in_o hand_n unless_o to_o give_v a_o convince_a argument_n against_o himself_o and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o light_n in_o turk_n who_o be_v challenge_v by_o their_o misinform_a and_o deceive_v conscience_n for_o drink_v of_o wine_n prohibit_v by_o mahomet_n be_v nothing_o different_a from_o the_o darkness_n of_o their_o blind_a conscience_n for_o how_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v any_o spiritual_a light_n in_o they_o witness_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o their_o blind_a and_o misguide_a conscience_n say_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o import_n be_v that_o which_o he_o add_v pag._n 89._o of_o the_o blind_a conscience_n of_o papist_n challenge_v for_o eat_a flesh_n in_o lent_n but_o he_o add_v that_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n will_v never_o consent_v to_o such_o abomination_n but_o take_v away_o blindness_n open_v the_o intellect_n and_o direct_v judgement_n and_o conscience_n all_o which_o be_v very_o true_a of_o the_o true_a light_n of_o christ_n bestow_v upon_o believer_n and_o reveal_v in_o his_o word_n but_o be_v most_o false_a of_o his_o light_n which_o be_v in_o all_o man_n natural_o and_o common_a to_o all_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n heathen_n turk_n and_o cannibal_n as_o well_o as_o christian_n in_o name_n and_o thing_n and_o while_o the_o quaker_n preach_v up_o this_o as_o a_o sure_a guide_n to_o life_n eternal_a they_o be_v abominable_a pelagian_a and_o socinian_n deceiver_n who_o shall_v be_v flee_v from_o as_o the_o most_o impudent_a and_o swear_v enemy_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o gospel_n that_o ever_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n a_o company_n of_o pure_a pagan-preacher_n who_o doctrine_n be_v paganism_n and_o drive_v thereunto_o 23._o in_o the_o last_o place_n as_o a_o plaster_n to_o cover_v all_o the_o deformity_n of_o his_o opinion_n hithertil_a hold_v forth_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n be_v not_o the_o power_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o man_n soul_n whereof_o a_o man_n be_v master_n and_o can_v exercise_v when_o he_o will_v if_o no_o natural_a defect_n hinder_v for_o a_o man_n can_v stir_v up_o when_o he_o please_v this_o light_n and_o seed_n but_o it_o move_v and_o breathe_v and_o contend_v with_o man_n as_o the_o lord_n see_v good_a so_o that_o a_o man_n even_o though_o he_o have_v some_o sense_n of_o his_o misery_n can_v when_o he_o will_v by_o his_o stir_v up_o of_o this_o light_n attain_v tenderness_n of_o heart_n but_o he_o must_v attend_v to_o that_o which_o at_o certain_a time_n come_v upon_o all_o in_o which_o it_o wonderful_o mollifi_v and_o warm_v the_o heart_n and_o work_v in_o the_o man_n at_o which_o time_n if_o the_o man_n resist_v not_o but_o join_v with_o it_o he_o obtain_v salvation_n thereby_o and_o he_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o spirit_n move_v the_o water_n of_o bethesda_n not_o bethsaida_n as_o he_o say_v and_o add_v that_o god_n in_o love_n to_o all_o mankind_n work_v so_o in_o the_o heart_n by_o this_o seed_n at_o certain_a singular_a time_n set_v their_o sin_n in_o order_n before_o their_o eye_n invite_v to_o repentance_n and_o offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n which_o if_o man_n refuse_v not_o he_o may_v be_v save_v
we_o reply_v that_o it_o must_v be_v prove_v that_o what_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v give_v be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n and_o not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o what_o the_o man_n have_v both_o these_o parable_n to_o which_o this_o be_v annex_v clear_a that_o the_o more_o promise_v be_v but_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o what_o be_v have_v and_o improve_v to_o say_v then_o that_o one_o that_o improve_v nature_n shall_v obtain_v grace_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o one_o improve_n health_n shall_v obtain_v wealth_n or_o honour_n or_o one_o by_o improve_n wealth_n and_o honour_n shall_v obtain_v health_n but_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o say_n be_v that_o such_o as_o improve_v gift_n and_o talent_n give_v of_o god_n shall_v get_v more_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n as_o he_o that_o improve_v wealth_n get_v more_o wealth_n 2._o what_o mean_v that_o by_o which_o all_o aught_o to_o believe_v do_v spiritual_a grace_n and_o light_n bestow_v only_o lay_v on_o a_o obligation_n to_o believe_v then_o it_o do_v nothing_o for_o the_o obligation_n lie_v upon_o the_o man_n before_o to_o believe_v 3_o be_v every_o thing_n that_o lay_v on_o a_o obligation_n to_o believe_v supernatural_a and_o save_v then_o the_o law_n be_v supernatural_a and_o save_v but_o our_o quaker_n talk_v he_o know_v not_o what_o 4_o we_o do_v not_o exclude_v supernatural_a &_o save_a light_n as_o appear_z from_o what_o we_o say_v but_o let_v we_o hear_v why_o this_o man_n will_v have_v nothing_o else_o here_o understand_v 32._o his_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o we_o be_v not_o say_v to_o receive_v what_o be_v common_a and_o peculiar_a to_o our_o nature_n from_o christ_n and_o the_o evangelist_n be_v here_o declare_v christ_n office_n as_o mediator_n and_o the_o benefit_n which_o we_o get_v from_o he_o as_o such_o answ._n if_o we_o receive_v not_o what_o be_v natural_a and_o common_a from_o christ_n we_o have_v neither_o our_o be_v nor_o conservation_n of_o he_o contrare_fw-la to_o heb._n 1_o 3._o col._n 1_o 16_o 17._o and_o that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v here_o chief_o clear_v and_o confirm_v the_o deity_n of_o christ_n none_o but_o socinian_n will_v deny_v his_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o light_n be_v say_v to_o shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o be_v comprehend_v by_o darkness_n but_o this_o darkness_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o natural_a state_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o in_o his_o natural_a state_n man_n can_v comprehend_v what_o be_v common_a and_o peculiar_a to_o he_o as_o such_o ans._n not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o call_v something_o both_o common_a and_o peculiar_a which_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o repugnancy_n here_o we_o grant_v that_o man_n natural_a state_n be_v a_o state_n of_o darkness_n and_o therefore_o infer_v that_o while_n in_o that_o state_n he_o be_v void_a of_o all_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a light_n for_o when_o this_o come_v the_o man_n become_v light_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o though_o man_n in_o his_o natural_a state_n can_v comprehend_v that_o which_o be_v natural_a yet_o he_o can_v comprehend_v the_o god_n of_o nature_n who_o be_v here_o call_v light_n this_o light_n may_v shine_v by_o natural_a effect_n of_o reason_n and_o a_o natural_a conscience_n in_o a_o natural_a man_n and_o yet_o the_o man_n nor_o comprehend_v or_o understand_v this_o light_n our_o quaker_n who_o light_n of_o reason_n be_v darkness_n take_v the_o light_n here_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o effect_n and_o not_o of_o the_o efficient_a &_o so_o practical_o confute_v himself_o his_o three_o reason_n be_v but_o a_o repetition_n of_o what_o he_o say_v before_o &_o be_v answer_v §_o 30._o he_o ade●h_v more_o that_o in_o which_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v that_o we_o may_v become_v the_o child_n of_o light_n be_v supernatural_a sufficient_a and_o save_v but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n john_n 12_o 36._o ans._n that_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n which_o be_v god_n be_v most_o true_a but_o that_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n which_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a creature_n and_o a_o work_n in_o we_o as_o he_o imagine_v be_v not_o true_a john_n who_o come_v to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v on_o he_o which_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o that_o be_v on_o christ_n jesus_n act_n 19_o 4_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o joh._n 3_o 36._o to_o he_o give_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o through_o his_o name_n whoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n act._n 10_o 43._o but_o why_o do_v we_o cite_v particular_a place_n see_v the_o whole_a bible_n confirm_v it_o here_o his_o quakerism_n set_v up_o its_o head_n while_o he_o will_v have_v that_o light_n mention_v joh_n 12_o 36._o not_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o christ_n himself_o but_o of_o some_o create_a thing_n in_o every_o man_n that_o be_v but_o mere_a nature_n contrare_fw-la to_o the_o very_a obvious_a import_n of_o the_o word_n as_o connect_v with_o the_o precede_a verse_n 34._o where_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v mention_v who_o the_o jew_n thought_n shall_v abide_v for_o ever_o and_o not_o be_v lift_v up_o but_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o stay_v always_o and_o that_o therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o lie_v hold_v on_o he_o now_o by_o faith_n and_o walk_v in_o he_o for_o darkness_n will_v come_v when_o he_o and_o his_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v remove_v conform_a to_o that_o joh._n 8_o 12._o i_o be_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n he_o that_o follow_v i_o shall_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o shall_v have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n see_v also_o john_n 9_o 5._o but_o say_v he_o pag._n 100_o they_o can_v believe_v in_o his_o person_n although_o he_o be_v remove_v and_o himself_o add_v a_o answer_n when_o he_o mention_v afterward_o a_o day_n of_o visitation_n so_o that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o lay_v hold_n on_o the_o fair_a opportunity_n they_o have_v the_o day_n will_v come_v when_o christ_n himself_o and_o also_o in_o his_o dispensation_n and_o offer_v of_o mercy_n in_o the_o gospel_n administration_n shall_v go_v away_o and_o then_o they_o shall_v walk_v in_o darkness_n his_o conclusion_n be_v so_o ill_o found_v and_o destructive_a of_o true_a christianity_n substitute_v some_o natural_a and_o consequent_o now_o corrupt_v thing_n common_a to_o all_o man_n both_o within_o and_o without_o the_o church_n both_o barbarous_a and_o more_o moralize_v in_o the_o room_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v with_o all_o detestation_n and_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v once_o more_o repeat_v what_o he_o cit_v at_o large_a out_o of_o cyrillus_n if_o it_o be_v consider_v alone_o without_o this_o man_n corrupt_a gloss_n which_o we_o be_v not_o to_o regaird_a speak_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o own_o as_o may_v easy_o be_v make_v to_o appear_v if_o we_o judge_v it_o worth_a so_o much_o pain_n as_o to_o clear_v it_o 33._o the_o second_o ground_n of_o his_o universal_a grace_n set_v down_o pag._n 101._o §_o 22._o be_v take_v from_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a mat._n 13_o mark_n 4._o luk._n 8._o and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n rom._n 10._o and_o the_o engraft_a word_n jam._n 1_o 21._o but_o be_v any_o so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o this_o be_v utter_o impertinent_a to_o his_o purpose_n see_v it_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o our_o lord_n be_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o ordinary_a fruit_n of_o a_o preach_v gospel_n and_o that_o among_o those_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o docile_a and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o profane_a and_o flagitious_a mocker_n opposer_n and_o persecuter_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o not_o speak_v of_o that_o word_n which_o be_v hear_v with_o the_o ear_n and_o do_v not_o paul_n speak_v of_o such_o a_o outward_a word_n rom._n 10._o which_o be_v preach_v by_o such_o who_o foot_n be_v beautiful_a and_o that_o word_n whereof_o james_n speak_v be_v the_o same_o which_o shall_v be_v receive_v with_o meekness_n that_o it_o may_v become_v a_o engraft_a word_n and_o prove_v save_v be_v this_o word_n a_o substantial_a thing_n lie_v in_o every_o man_n heart_n be_v this_o word_n communicate_v to_o all_o the_o world_n to_o all_o and_o every_o man_n in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o very_a day_n that_o adam_n fall_v what_o uncouth_a fancy_n must_v these_o quaker_n have_v that_o be_v carry_v away_o
of_o their_o lose_a condition_n and_o in_o our_o examination_n thereof_o in_o its_o several_a part_n we_o have_v manifest_v the_o contrary_a and_o whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o palpable_a untruth_n the_o reader_n be_v free_a to_o judge_v he_o faith_n moreover_o that_o they_o deny_v remission_n of_o sin_n or_o justification_n to_o be_v have_v by_o any_o work_n of_o they_o etc._n etc._n and_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o point_n see_v they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o a_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o not_o by_o righteousness_n impute_v 10._o he_o give_v we_o in_o the_o next_o place_n good_a word_n about_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n which_o if_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o and_o not_o deceive_v we_o with_o socinian_n gloss_n and_o metaphorical_a sense_n he_o shall_v withal_o overturn_v his_o own_o doctrine_n about_o justification_n as_o we_o do_v show_v late_o §_o 6._o in_o the_o three_o place_n he_o say_v several_a thing_n that_o be_v not_o true_a as_o first_o that_o all_o man_n that_o have_v come_v to_o man_n age_n except_o christ_n have_v sin_v insinuate_a that_o none_o else_o have_v sin_v nor_o be_v capable_a to_o sin_n until_o they_o come_v to_o man_n age_n and_o so_o deny_v original_a sin_n and_o deny_v that_o the_o wicked_a action_n of_o young_a child_n and_o young_a girl_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o be_v man_n and_o woman_n be_v sin_n then_o say_v he_o therefore_o all_o have_v need_n of_o a_o saviour_n to_o take_v away_o god_n wrath_n due_a for_o sin_n have_v none_o need_v of_o a_o saviour_n but_o these_o only_a who_o be_v come_v to_o man_n age_n qui_fw-la aetatem_fw-la virilem_fw-la adepti_fw-la sunt_fw-la do_v the_o scripture_n make_v any_o such_o restriction_n where_o be_v then_o his_o universal_a redemption_n that_o he_o plead_v for_o he_o add_v in_o this_o respect_n therefore_o he_o be_v true_o say_v to_o have_v bear_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o in_o his_o own_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n in_o what_o respect_n be_v this_o be_v it_o in_o respect_n that_o all_o have_v sin_v but_o what_o sense_n be_v there_o here_o or_o truth_n either_o do_v he_o bear_v the_o sin_n of_o none_o but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v come_v to_o man_n age_n what_o become_v then_o of_o infant_n boy_n and_o girl_n and_o if_o he_o bear_v all_o their_o sin_n they_o must_v upon_o that_o account_n be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o justify_v and_o so_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o universal_a justification_n as_o well_o as_o redemption_n and_o this_o be_v confirm_v indeed_o by_o the_o follow_a word_n to_o wit_n therefore_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a mediator_n remove_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n that_o our_o bypast_a sin_n may_v not_o meet_v we_o see_v the●_n be_v pardon_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n for_o this_o he_o understand_v of_o all_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v but_o he_o tell_v we_o afterward_o that_o remission_n be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o be_v express_v and_o i_o will_v ask_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o remission_n in_o or_o by_o justification_n and_o if_o so_o why_o be_v we_o not_o justify_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o we_o and_o receive_v by_o faith_n then_o follow_v a_o word_n which_o undo_v all_o not_o to_o mention_v his_o parenthesis_n be_v he_o say_v some_o may_v partake_v of_o this_o remission_n who_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n sufficient_o above_o speak_v unto_o christ_n say_v he_o have_v by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n reconcile_v we_o while_n enemy_n unto_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o offer_v unto_o we_o reconciliation_n and_o make_v we_o capable_a thereof_o if_o this_o be_v all_o it_o be_v but_o the_o arminian_n reconciliation_n he_o have_v be_v speak_v of_o yea_o and_o nothing_o but_o what_o a_o socinian_n may_v say_v sure_o the_o apostle_n speak_v otherways_o of_o this_o reconciliation_n as_o of_o that_o which_o certain_o be_v attend_v with_o justification_n &_o with_o such_o a_o justification_n as_o have_v life_n follow_v say_v rom._n 5_o 8_o 9_o 10._o but_o god_n commend_v his_o love_n towards_o we_o that_o while_o we_o be_v yet_o sinner_n christ_n die_v for_o we_o much_o more_o than_o be_v now_o justify_v by_o his_o blood_n we_o shall_v be_v save_v from_o wrath_n through_o he_o for_o if_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n much_o more_o be_v reconcile_v we_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o ●is_n life_n the_o reconciliation_n then_o which_o be_v have_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a offer_n of_o reconciliation_n nor_o a_o mere_a capability_n for_o it_o but_o that_o which_o be_v a_o certain_a forerunner_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o which_o salvation_n must_v necessary_o with_o a_o much_o more_o follow_v he_o cit_v 2_o corinth_n chap._n 5_o vers_fw-la 19_o 20._o and_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o apostle_n insinuate_v that_o see_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v remove_v by_o christ_n obedience_n the_o lord_n be_v ready_a to_o be_v reconcile_v with_o they_o and_o pardon_v their_o sin_n if_o they_o repent_v which_o be_v a_o manifest_a perversion_n of_o the_o scope_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v there_o show_v how_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o sinner_n unto_o god_n be_v bring_v about_o both_o upon_o god_n part_n and_o upon_o man_n part_n not_o of_o all_o the_o world_n but_o of_o the_o elect_a scatter_a over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n &_o how_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o peace_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n &_o so_o it_o be_v a_o limit_a world_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o we_o use_v ver_fw-la 18._o and_o again_o more_o full_o ver_n 21._o for_o he_o have_v make_v he_o sin_n for_o we_o who_o know_v no_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v only_o that_o world_n he_o understand_v here_o for_o who_o christ_n be_v make_v sin_n have_v their_o sin_n impute_v to_o he_o as_o their_o cautioner_n and_o sponsor_n &_o who_o by_o virtue_n hereof_o be_v clothe_v in_o due_a time_n with_o his_o righteousness_n impute_v unto_o they_o and_o so_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o now_o all_o this_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a may_v be_v or_o a_o mere_a possible_a or_o potential_a thing_n but_o such_o as_o be_v attend_v with_o a_o non-imputation_n of_o trespass_n nor_o do_v it_o import_v only_o a_o readiness_n in_o god_n to_o be_v reconcile_v with_o all_o upon_o condition_n as_o if_o there_o be_v none_o in_o particular_a who_o sin_n the_o lord_n do_v bear_v and_o for_o who_o he_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o satisfactory_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n purchase_v unto_o they_o faith_n to_o be_v grant_v in_o due_a time_n whereby_o they_o shall_v come_v ●o_o be_v actual_o reconcile_v unto_o and_o bring_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n when_o through_o his_o grace_n they_o shall_v yield_v unto_o the_o beseaching_n of_o christ_n messenger_n to_o who_o the_o word_n ministry_n or_o administration_n of_o this_o reconciliation_n be_v commit_v as_o to_o ambassador_n for_o christ_n send_v forth_o to_o beseach_v in_o christ_n stead_n by_o all_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v clear_v how_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o god_n and_o particular_o all_o the_o new_a thing_n which_o the_o new_a creature_n the_o man_n in_o christ_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o vers_fw-la 17_o 18._o and_o moreover_o we_o see_v verse_n 14_o 15._o that_o these_o all_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v be_v one_o time_n or_o other_o make_v alive_a unto_o god_n through_o grace_n communicate_v to_o they_o from_o their_o head_n christ_n as_o it_o follow_v and_o that_o he_o die_v for_o all_o that_o they_o which_o live_v shall_v not_o hence_o forth_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o which_o die_v for_o they_o and_o rose_z again_o and_o who_o will_v say_v that_o it_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n be_v say_v with_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v thus_o alive_a 11._o he_o tell_v we_o next_o of_o a_o double_a redemption_n both_o which_o he_o say_v be_v perfect_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o as_o to_o we_o can_v be_v separate_v then_o all_o certain_o must_v be_v redeem_v the_o one_o way_n who_o be_v redeem_v the_o other_o way_n what_o be_v the_o first_o that_o say_v he_o pag._n 127._o make_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o crucify_a body_n without_o we_o and_o by_o this_o man_n as_o he_o stand_v in_o the_o fall_n be_v put_v in_o a_o capacity_n of_o salvation_n and_o have_v transmit_v into_o he_o a_o certain_a measure_n of_o power_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o
holy_a say_v he_o as_o be_v the_o root_n they_o come_v from_o and_o therefore_o god_n accept_v they_o and_o justify_v we_o in_o they_o and_o reward_v we_o for_o they_o of_o his_o proper_a and_o free_a grace_n but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v perfect_a and_o can_v stand_v before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o justice_n and_o so_o become_v any_o part_n of_o that_o righteousness_n answer_v the_o law_n which_o require_v perfect_a conformity_n in_o all_o point_n which_o be_v the_o formal_a objective_n reason_n of_o our_o justification_n before_o god_n who_o judgement_n be_v according_a to_o truth_n 18._o thus_o we_o have_v see_v his_o explication_n of_o their_o opinion_n which_o in_o short_a be_v this_o that_o the_o formal_a objective_n reason_n or_o as_o he_o with_o other_o speak_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n be_v a_o principle_n of_o grace_n within_o or_o christ_n form_v there_o that_o be_v the_o spring_n and_o principle_n of_o good_a work_n which_o be_v begin_v sanctification_n this_o i_o say_v be_v it_o according_a to_o his_o word_n but_o if_o we_o remember_v what_o be_v say_v to_o this_o above_o and_o consider_v what_o this_o christ_n within_o be_v according_a to_o the_o quaker_n principle_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o this_o point_n their_o judgement_n be_v more_o detestable_a than_o be_v that_o of_o papist_n for_o this_o christ_n within_o be_v form_v of_o mere_a nature_n and_o that_o without_o any_o assistance_n of_o divine_a grace_n by_o the_o mere_a rational_a power_n and_o will_v of_o man_n yield_v unto_o the_o dictate_v of_o that_o light_n which_o be_v as_o well_o in_o pagan_n that_o scarce_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n as_o in_o christian_n and_o in_o all_o alike_o and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o christ_n form_v within_o whereof_o pagan_n turk_n and_o indian_n that_o never_o hear_v nor_o never_o shall_v hear_v the_o least_o sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v capable_a and_o by_o virtue_n whereof_o they_o as_o well_o as_o christian_n can_v come_v to_o be_v justify_v so_o that_o in_o short_a the_o justification_n which_o quaker_n maintain_v be_v a_o pagan-justification_n result_v from_o a_o pagan-sanctification_a and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o many_o degree_n more_o damnable_a &_o abominable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o tridentine_a papist_n let_v any_o of_o understand_a judge_n 19_o after_o this_o he_o lay_v down_o three_o proposition_n the_o confirmation_n of_o which_o will_v as_o he_o think_v prove_v his_o point_n the_o first_o be_v this_o pag._n 129._o the_o obedience_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o whereby_o the_o soul_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o that_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n procure_v that_o grace_n and_o seed_n by_o who_o inward_a operation_n christ_n be_v form_v within_o and_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v conform_v unto_o it_o and_o so_o just_a and_o justify_v and_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o capacity_n and_o offer_n of_o grac●_n god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v reconcile_v not_o that_o he_o be_v actual_o reconcile_v or_o justify_v any_o or_o hold_v any_o justify_v who_o remain_v in_o his_o sin_n ungodly_a impure_a and_o unjust_a ans._n 1._o to_o say_v that_o the_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n procure_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o that_o it_o procure_v that_o grace_n and_o seed_n etc._n etc._n be_v but_o a_o socinian_n and_o arminian_n untruth_n destroy_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o mater_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o obedience_n and_o death_n do_v not_o full_o discharge_v the_o debt_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v justify_v &_o do_v not_o make_v a_o proper_a real_a and_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o justice_n in_o their_o behalf_n contrare_fw-la to_o rom._n 5_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 19_o 1_o tim._n 2_o 5_o 6._o heb._n 10_o 10_o 14._o dan._n 9_o 24_o 25._o esai_n 53_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 10_o 11_o 12._o nor_o do_v the_o scripture_n speak_v so_o of_o the_o mater_fw-la see_v ephes._n 1_o 7._o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n so_o col._n 1_o 14._o see_v also_o col._n 2_o 13._o ephes._n 4_o 32_o mat._n 9_o 2_o 5._o mark_n 2_o 59_o luk._n 5_o 20_o 23._o &_o 7_o 48._o mat._n 26_o 28._o heb._n 9_o 22._o it_o be_v true_a the_o method_n of_o the_o gospel_n require_v that_o the_o person_n be_v first_o unite_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n before_o they_o can_v obtain_v these_o benefit_n of_o his_o redemption_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n he_o speak_v of_o 2._o this_o grace_n and_o seed_n be_v with_o he_o common_a to_o all_o flesh_n but_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o not_o as_o we_o have_v show_v above_o that_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v for_o all_o or_o that_o all_o receive_v grace_n by_o virtue_n thereof_o 3._o christ_n form_v within_o by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o that_o grace_n and_o seed_n which_o be_v common_a to_o pagan_n be_v but_o a_o natural_a christ_n and_o birth_n for_o such_o as_o the_o cause_n be_v such_o must_v the_o effect_n be_v and_o so_o what_o follow_v upon_o this_o be_v but_o a_o pagan_a righteousness_n and_o justification_n 4._o it_o be_v false_a as_o we_o have_v already_o manifest_v that_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v reconcile_v only_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o capacity_n and_o offer_v of_o grace_n 5._o we_o say_v not_o that_o god_n justify_v any_o remain_v in_o their_o sin_n yet_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o justify_v may_v commit_v sin_n and_o thereby_o fall_v under_o god_n fatherly_a displeasure_n psal._n 89_o 31_o 32_o 33._o &_o 51_o 7_o 8_o 9.10_o 11_o 12._o &_o 32_o 5._o 1_o cor._n 11_o 30_o 32._o luk._n 1_o 20._o mat._n 26_o 75._o and_o yet_o withal_o remain_v in_o the_o state_n of_o justification_n luk._n 22_o 32._o heb._n 10_o 24._o for_o we_o approve_v not_o of_o antinomian_o in_o this_o mater_fw-la 20._o the_o proposition_n we_o have_v hear_v and_o what_o he_o will_v proper_o assert_v thereby_o we_o be_v yet_o to_o learn_v possible_o his_o proof_n will_v help_v we_o to_o understand_v it_o the_o first_o proof_n pag._n 130._o us_o from_o rom._n 3_o 25._o here_o say_v he_o the_o apostle_n show_v the_o efficacy_n of_o christ●s_n death_n viz._n that_o by_o it_o and_o faith_n in_o it_o remission_n of_o by_o past_a sin_n be_v obtain_v and_o what_o then_o this_o be_v it_o in_o which_o and_o for_o which_o the_o long_a suffering_n of_o god_n be_v exercise_v towards_o man_n and_o what_o then_o therefore_o though_o man_n by_o their_o daily_a sin_n deserve_v eternal_a death_n yet_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n grace_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n move_v they_o in_o love_n dure_v the_o day_n of_o their_o visitation_n that_o they_o may_v be_v redeem_v from_o evil_a here_o be_v quaker_n dream_n whereof_o the_o text_n make_v no_o mention_n and_o dream_n that_o have_v no_o sense_n but_o with_o man_n of_o distract_a brain_n 21._o we_o be_v nothing_o the_o wise_a by_o this_o proof_n let_v we_o see_v the_o next_o if_o god_n say_v he_o shall_v be_v total_o reconcile_v unto_o man_n and_o repute_v they_o just_a while_o they_o be_v actual_o unjust_a why_o do_v he_o so_o oft_o complean_o of_o his_o people_n as_o esai_n 59_o 2._o where_o there_o be_v perfect_a and_o complete_a reconciliation_n there_o be_v no_o separation_n or_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o sin_n can_v make_v no_o separation_n and_o that_o their_o good_a work_n and_o worst_a sin_n be_v the_o same_o in_o god_n account_n this_o give_v too_o great_a liberty_n to_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o say_v he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o person_n not_o yet_o convert_v who_o antinomian_o their_o adversary_n say_v be_v justify_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o of_o person_n convert_v according_a to_o protestant_n who_o may_v fall_v into_o grievous_a sin_n and_o yet_o be_v say_v by_o they_o to_o remain_v perfect_o and_o whole_o justify_v answ._n 1_o here_o begin_v we_o to_o understand_v something_o of_o his_o proposition_n and_o of_o its_o design_n and_o for_o answer_v we_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a unrighteousness_n one_o of_o state_n or_o of_o person_n another_o of_o condition_n and_o particular_a action_n as_o to_o the_o first_o no_o unrighteous_a person_n be_v justify_v because_o before_o justification_n he_o must_v be_v clothe_v with_o the_o impute_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o constitute_v just_a and_o in_o justification_n declare_v just_a because_o constitute_v just_o and_o as_o to_o the_o second_o though_o such_o a_o one_o as_o commit_v sin_n be_v in_o so_o far_o unrighteous_a as_o to_o his_o action_n and_o in_o that_o not_o justify_v or_o approven_v of_o god_n yet_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o thereby_o put_v in_o a_o justify_v state_n he_o remain_v in_o god_n account_n a_o justify_v person_n as_o to_o his_o state_n which_o
be_v not_o break_v off_o by_o these_o sin_n this_o may_v be_v further_o clear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o perseverence_n 2._o not_o to_o insist_v on_o esai_n 59_o and_o other_o such_o scripture_n place_n which_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o generality_n and_o body_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v god_n people_n by_o profession_n but_o not_o by_o real_a union_n through_o faith_n and_o so_o speak_v nothing_o to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n we_o say_v that_o sin_n in_o the_o justify_v though_o it_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o fatherly_a smile_v countenance_n &_o so_o procure_v fatherly_a displeasure_n wrath_n and_o anger_n and_o sad_a chaftning_n yet_o make_v not_o a_o separation_n from_o the_o state_n of_o favour_n nor_o put_v they_o again_o into_o that_o state_n of_o separation_n wherein_o they_o be_v before_o conversion_n 3._o we_o grant_v that_o sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a can_v so_o far_o make_v a_o separation_n as_o that_o by_o such_o sin_n the_o regenerate_a may_v incur_v god_n displeasure_n esa._n 64_o 5_o 6_o 9_o 2_o sam._n 11_o 27._o grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n ephes._n 4_o 30._o lose_v some_o measure_n of_o their_o grace_n and_o comfort_v psal._n 51_o 8_o 10_o 12._o revel_v 2.4_o cant._n 5_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 6._o have_v their_o conscience_n wound_v psal._n 37_o 3_o 4_o &_o 51_o 8._o and_o bring_v temporal_a judgement_n on_o themselves_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 32._o psal._n 89_o ver_fw-la 31_o 32._o 4._o hence_o we_o see_v a_o manifest_a difference_n betwixt_o their_o best_a work_n and_o worst_a sin_n even_o in_o god_n account_n 5._o and_o also_o we_o see_v how_o false_a it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o our_o doctrine_n open_v a_o door_n to_o licentiousness_n 6._o though_o he_o call_v antinomian_o his_o adversary_n yet_o he_o and_o they_o agree_v in_o this_o principal_a thing_n against_o the_o orthodox_n that_o both_o say_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n to_o be_v put_v betwixt_o god_n fatherly-displeasure_n and_o his_o law-wrath_n 22._o his_o three_o argument_n follow_v which_o in_o sum_n be_v this_o the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o other_o like_a condition_n before_o justification_n which_o be_v in_o vain_a if_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o ans._n this_o say_v something_o against_o antinomian_o who_o plead_v for_o a_o justification_n before_o faith_n but_o the_o man_n know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o of_o that_o judgement_n for_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n say_v chap._n 11._o §_o 4._o that_o though_o god_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n decree_n to_o justify_v all_o the_o elect_v gal._n 3_o 8_o 1_o pet._n 1_o 2_o 19_o 20_o rom._n 8_o 30_o and_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n die_v for_o their_o sin_n and_o rise_v again_o for_o their_o justification_n gal._n 4_o 4._o 1_o tim._n 2_o 6._o rom._n 4_o 25._o yet_o they_o be_v not_o justify_v until_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v in_o due_a time_n actual_o apply_v christ_n unto_o they_o col._n 1_o 21_o 22._o gal._n 2_o 16._o tit._n 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o what_o follow_v in_o that_o page_n 131._o speak_v nothing_o against_o we_o for_o we_o maintain_v not_o antinomian_a doctrine_n but_o pag._n 132._o he_o say_v that_o the_o intercession_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v vain_a and_o unnecessary_a if_o he_o shall_v pray_v for_o such_o as_o be_v already_o reconcile_v and_o perfect_o justify_v ans._n neither_o do_v this_o make_v against_o we_o for_o we_o say_v not_o with_o antinomian_o that_o sin_n not_o yet_o commit_v be_v actual_o pardon_v and_o as_o for_o the_o state_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o justification_n which_o we_o own_v as_o it_o make_v not_o after-sinne_n to_o be_v already_o pardon_v so_o it_o rather_o establish_v the_o use_n and_o necessity_n of_o christ_n intercession_n to_o the_o end_n they_o who_o be_v justify_v may_v obtain_v remission_n of_o these_o after-sin_n after_o the_o gospel_n method_n that_o be_v after_o they_o have_v repent_v of_o they_o and_o go_v by_o faith_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o may_v get_v grace_n to_o recover_v they_o out_o of_o sin_n by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o this_o may_v serve_v for_o confutation_n of_o what_o follow_v be_v nothing_o but_o a_o repetition_n of_o his_o corrupt_a doctrine_n and_o a_o renew_a act_n of_o his_o wont_a manner_n of_o pervert_v scripture_n to_o the_o countenance_v of_o his_o dream_n without_o any_o colour_n of_o verity_n 23._o he_o say_v next_o he_o will_v answer_v objection_n and_o propose_v one_o pag._n 133._o §_o 6._o and_o that_o he_o say_v be_v take_v from_o 2_o cor._n 5_o 18_o 19_o whence_o he_o say_v they_o and_o who_o these_o be_v he_o tell_v not_o infer_v that_o christ_n perfect_v total_o the_o work_n of_o reconciliation_n while_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n ans._n if_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o objection_n be_v that_o christ_n do_v so_o perfect_a the_o work_n of_o reconciliation_n on_o earth_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v by_o man_n in_o order_n to_o his_o actual_a justification_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n we_o own_v it_o not_o and_o by_o his_o answer_n it_o seem_v this_o be_v the_o meaning_n thereof_o of_o the_o place_n we_o speak_v above_o and_o reject_v his_o corrupt_a sense_n thereof_o which_o here_o again_o he_o repeat_v the_o next_o objection_n be_v from_o vers_n 21._o and_o he_o thus_o frame_v it_o as_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o christ_n so_o be_v his_o righteousness_n impute_v to_o we_o though_o we_o be_v not_o just_a and_o we_o be_v just_o only_o by_o imputation_n as_o christ_n be_v a_o sinner_n how_o this_o be_v bring_v in_o here_o i_o see_v not_o but_o he_o must_v take_v his_o liberty_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o answer_v albeit_o say_v he_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v bear_v our_o sin_n and_o to_o have_v suffer_v for_o they_o and_o to_o be_v repute_v among_o man_n for_o a_o sinner_n yet_o god_n do_v not_o repute_v he_o a_o sinner_n for_o he_o be_v holy_a ans._n that_o christ_n be_v personal_o and_o inherent_o holy_a be_v very_o true_a and_o that_o god_n look_v upon_o he_o as_o such_o be_v true_a also_o but_o yet_o as_o a_o cautioner_n take_v on_o the_o debt_n of_o his_o people_n he_o become_v imputative_o a_o sinner_n and_o the_o father_n constitute_v he_o thus_o a_o cautioner_n in_o the_o room_n and_o place_n of_o the_o choose_a one_o be_v here_o say_v to_o have_v make_v he_o sin_n who_o know_v no_o sin_n that_o we_o through_o he_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n he_o add_v nor_o do_v christ_n die_v that_o we_o may_v be_v account_v just_a though_o no_o more_o real_o just_a than_o christ_n be_v real_o unjust_a ans._n nor_o do_v we_o speak_v so_o but_o this_o we_o say_v as_o christ_n who_o be_v inherent_o and_o personal_o holy_a yet_o as_o our_o cautioner_n be_v by_o imputation_n account_v a_o sinner_n our_o sin_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o and_o cause_v to_o meet_v upon_o he_o as_o esa._n 53_o 6._o so_o though_o we_o be_v unrighteous_a in_o ourselves_o and_o inherent_o sinful_a and_o guilty_a yet_o by_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n we_o be_v real_o account_v just_o he_o proceed_v if_o we_o be_v make_v just_a as_o christ_n be_v a_o sinner_n by_o imputation_n then_o as_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o sin_n in_o christ_n so_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o the_o least_o righteousness_n in_o we_o answ._n neither_o be_v there_o any_o necessity_n of_o our_o righteousness_n if_o we_o except_o faith_n close_v with_o christ_n in_o order_n to_o our_o become_a righteous_a by_o imputation_n or_o be_v justify_v upon_o that_o account_n but_o as_o to_o other_o end_n and_o use_n he_o know_v we_o plead_v for_o a_o necessity_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n he_o say_v this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o in_o that_o he_o do_v undergo_v torment_n in_o soul_n and_o body_n which_o be_v due_a to_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o he_o by_o suffer_v obtean_v for_o we_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o which_o grace_n we_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o ans._n this_o be_v say_v but_o not_o prove_v and_o be_v contradictory_n to_o the_o native_a import_n of_o the_o word_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n his_o undergo_n the_o punishment_n due_a to_o our_o sin_n as_o our_o sponsor_n and_o cautioner_n presuppose_v his_o stand_n in_o our_o room_n and_o be_v charge_v with_o our_o guilt_n else_o he_o can_v not_o have_v suffer_v and_o pay_v our_o debt_n as_o our_o surety_n he_o prove_v that_o this_o righteousness_n be_v mean_v of_o infuse_a righteousness_n because_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o such_o a_o righteousness_n in_o the_o 14_o 15_o &_o 16._o verse_n of_o the_o follow_a
glory_n though_o we_o must_v always_o lament_v our_o shortcome_n and_o run_v to_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n that_o the_o defilement_n cleave_v to_o our_o best_a work_n may_v be_v purge_v away_o nor_o do_v we_o think_v that_o this_o hyperbolic_a expression_n of_o the_o penitent_a church_n will_v warrant_v any_o to_o ca●l_v all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o his_o people_n sordid_a and_o filthy_a rag_n what_o be_v of_o god_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v good_a &_o acceptable_a though_o the_o defilement_n that_o adhere_v to_o the_o best_a of_o god_n work_n in_o we_o here_o because_o of_o our_o continue_a corruption_n and_o because_o of_o the_o lusting_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o we_o shall_v be_v mourn_v over_o and_o keep_v we_o humble_a one_o thing_n i_o will_v further_o note_v here_o that_o if_o our_o gospel-work_n be_v such_o why_o be_v we_o not_o justify_v because_o of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o in_o they_o he_o further_o answer_v pag._n 149._o §_o 12_o that_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o best_a of_o man_n be_v imperfect_a yet_o god_n can_v produce_v perfect_a work_n in_o they_o by_o his_o spirit_n ans._n the_o qustion_n be_v not_o what_o god_n can_v do_v but_o what_o he_o do_v god_n can_v make_v all_o his_o perfect_a yet_o the_o supposition_n make_v say_v he_o do_v not_o so_o he_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a for_o his_o own_o glory_n so_o to_o work_v in_o his_o saint_n as_o they_o may_v have_v so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v here_o a_o body_n of_o death_n to_o wrestle_v with_o and_o occasion_n to_o pray_v daily_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o run_v to_o the_o fountain_n open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n that_o they_o may_v be_v washen_n he_o proceed_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o a_o blot_n and_o therefore_o all_o christ_n work_n wrought_v in_o his_o child_n be_v pure_a and_o perfect_a ans._n the_o spirit_n it_o be_v true_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o pollution_n yet_o his_o work_n as_o receive_v by_o we_o and_o as_o we_o be_v the_o formal_a actor_n of_o they_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o pollution_n and_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n first_o begin_v a_o good_a work_n in_o we_o and_o afterward_o perfect_v it_o phil._n 1_o 6._o how_o can_v then_o all_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o be_v perfect_a and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o his_o child_n here_o shall_v be_v as_o holy_a as_o they_o will_v be_v in_o heaven_n for_o what_o be_v high_o than_o perfection_n thus_o we_o see_v this_o man_n will_v outstripe_v bellarm._n who_o confess_v that_o our_o actual_a righteousness_n be_v imperfect_a because_o of_o the_o admixtion_n of_o venial_a fault_n and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o daily_a remission_n and_o will_v run_v the_o length_n of_o bold_a vasques_n who_o think_v that_o such_o have_v no_o need_n of_o remission_n in_o 1._o 2._o disp._n 204._o c._n 2._o &_o 3_o he_o further_o argue_v it_o will_v then_o follow_v that_o the_o miracle_n and_o work_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n gather_v of_o church_n write_v of_o scripture_n and_o give_v of_o themselves_o to_o the_o death_n for_o christ_n be_v defile_v with_o sin_n ans._n we_o must_v distinguish_v betwixt_o these_o work_n which_o be_v extraordinary_a i_o mean_v as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o performance_n and_o so_o peculiar_a to_o such_o extraordinary_a person_n in_o which_o they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o manner_n formal_a actor_n but_o passive_a organ_n such_o as_o work_n of_o miracle_n and_o write_v of_o scripture_n in_o these_o the_o apostle_n move_v as_o they_o be_v immediate_o act_v inspire_a and_o lead_v of_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o these_o be_v not_o proper_o their_o formal_a act_n and_o these_o which_o be_v of_o a_o more_o ordinary_a nature_n &_o wherein_o they_o be_v more_o formal_a actor_n through_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n whether_o in_o work_n belong_v to_o their_o office_n as_o preach_v and_o gather_v of_o church_n or_o in_o work_n of_o christianity_n as_o give_v themselves_o to_o the_o death_n and_o the_o like_a as_o to_o the_o first_o sort_n we_o may_v grant_v that_o they_o be_v undefiled_a as_o be_v pure_a act_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n be_v but_o organ_n use_v by_o the_o spirit_n as_o he_o see_v meet_v but_o as_o to_o other_o i_o see_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o they_o need_v to_o use_v that_o petition_n forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v his_o infirmity_n and_o weaknese_n &_o a_o body_n of_o death_n that_o make_v he_o cry_v out_o woe_n be_v i_o miserableman_n and_o be_v thereby_o make_v to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v not_o and_o hinder_v from_o do_v what_o he_o will_v rom._n 7_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o jam._n 3_o 2._o and_o the_o apostle_n john_n say_v 1_o joh._n 1_o 8._o that_n if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o 43._o thereafter_o he_o give_v unto_o work_n a_o instrumental_a part_n in_o justification_n which_o be_v true_a of_o faith_n lay_v hold_n on_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a objective_n formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n but_o can_v agree_v to_o work_n but_o he_o cit_v some_o protestant_n assent_v to_o this_o as_o polanus_fw-la symphon_n c._n 27._o who_o word_n if_o understand_v of_o after_o pardon_n that_o be_v of_o sin_n commit_v after_o justification_n as_o they_o may_v contain_v nothing_o but_o truth_n and_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o question_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o even_o justify_v person_n before_o remission_n of_o after_o sin_n must_v repent_v confess_v and_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n and_o act_v faith_n on_o christ._n zanchius_n in_o the_o word_n he_o cit_v be_v express_o speak_v of_o salvation_n not_o of_o justification_n and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o may_v cite_v all_o the_o protestant_n that_o i_o know_v of_o amesius_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o same_o as_o for_o mr_n baxter_n i_o have_v tell_v already_o that_o his_o notion_n about_o justification_n be_v not_o acceptable_a to_o all_o as_o for_o what_o he_o add_v about_o the_o word_n merit_n i_o shall_v not_o contend_v only_o i_o will_v say_v that_o see_v it_o sound_v so_o ill_a because_o of_o the_o common_a and_o know_a abuse_n thereof_o by_o papist_n the_o less_o we_o use_v it_o the_o better_a see_v verba_fw-la valent_fw-la usu_fw-la 44._o nor_o shall_v i_o say_v much_o against_o his_o conclusion_n of_o this_o mater_fw-la only_o while_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o such_o may_v confident_o appear_v before_o god_n who_o sensible_a of_o their_o own_o unworthiness_n and_o of_o the_o unprofitableness_n of_o all_o their_o work_n and_o endeavour_n etc._n etc._n do_v apply_v themselves_o unto_o the_o light_n within_o and_o suffer_v that_o grace_n to_o work_v in_o they_o and_o thereby_o be_v renew_v quicken_v and_o have_v christ_n rise_v in_o they_o and_o work_v in_o they_o to_o will_n &_o to_o do_v have_v thus_o put_v on_o christ_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o he_o and_o make_v partaker_n of_o his_o righteousness_n when_o i_o say_v he_o speak_v thus_o he_o but_o cheat_v his_o reader_n give_v he_o fair_a word_n and_o no_o more_o for_o as_o we_o have_v former_o see_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o principle_n this_o light_n be_v but_o a_o pelagian_a grace_n if_o not_o worse_o common_a to_o all_o man_n scythian_a and_o barbarian_a and_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o light_n without_o the_o least_o help_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o of_o grace_n assist_v far_o less_o regenerate_v such_o as_o be_v in_o nature_n and_o so_o begin_v every_o good_a work_n there_o be_v not_o in_o his_o write_n the_o least_o mention_n if_o the_o man_n will_v but_o yield_v and_o of_o power_n and_o full_a ability_n to_o do_v this_o he_o make_v no_o question_n he_o become_v regenerate_v beget_v of_o god_n partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o what_o not_o and_o this_o be_v this_o man_n sanctification_n and_o foundation_n of_o justification_n whereof_o pagan_n and_o barbarian_n who_o never_o do_v nor_o never_o shall_v hear_v of_o c●rist_n be_v as_o capable_a as_o such_o who_o live_v within_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o that_o without_o any_o new_a grace_n communicate_v by_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v with_o they_o let_v the_o reader_n now_o judge_n what_o a_o regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n can_v flow_v from_o this_o which_o be_v in_o every_o man_n and_o what_o justification_n that_o can_v be_v which_o be_v found_v hereupon_o and_o whether_o or_o not_o this_o be_v a_o sure_a bottom_n to_o stand_v upon_o and_o with_o confidence_n to_o rest_v upon_o
the_o gospel_n do_v not_o strict_o and_o precise_o oblige_v to_o perfection_n in_o degree_n but_o only_o to_o a_o endeavour_n after_o this_o perfection_n for_o than_o we_o be_v under_o no_o obligation_n to_o repent_v of_o and_o ask_v pardon_n of_o our_o short-coming_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n nor_o to_o run_v for_o cleanse_v by_o faith_n unto_o the_o fountain_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o this_o neither_o can_v tender_a christian_n assent_v to_o nor_o will_v their_o practice_n comply_v therewith_o 17._o i_o think_v a_o serious_a ponder_v of_o these_o rule_n for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o command_n set_v down_o in_o our_o great_a chatechisme_n quaest_n 99_o may_v make_v all_o who_o know_v themselves_o sober_a in_o this_o matter_n who_o there_fw-mi plead_v for_o this_o perfection_n who_o believe_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_a and_o bind_v every_o one_o to_o full_a conformity_n in_o the_o whole_a man_n unto_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o and_o unto_o entire_a obedience_n for_o ever_o so_o as_o to_o require_v the_o utmost_a perfection_n of_o every_o duty_n and_o to_o forbid_v the_o least_o degree_n of_o every_o sin_n psal._n 19_o 7._o jam._n 2_o 10_o mat._n 5_o 21._o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o so_o reach_v the_o understanding_n will_n affection_n and_o all_o other_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o word_n work_n and_o gesture_n rom._n 7_o 14._o deut._n 6_o 5._o with_o mat._n 22_o 37_o 38_o 39_o mat._n 5_o 21_o 22_o 27_o 28_o 36._o that_o where_o a_o duty_n be_v command_v the_o contrary_a sin_n be_v forbid_v esai_n 58_o 13._o deut._n 6_o 13._o with_o mat._n 4_o 9_o 10._o mat._n 15_o 4_o 5_o 6._o and_o where_o a_o sin_n be_v forbid_v the_o contrary_a duty_n be_v command_v mat._n 1_o 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25._o ephes._n 4_o 28._o that_o what_o god_n forbid_v be_v at_o no_o time_n to_o be_v do_v job_n 13_o 7_o 8._o rom._n 3_o 8._o job_n 36_o 21._o heb._n 11_o 29._o that_o under_o one_o sin_n or_o duty_n all_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n be_v forbid_v or_o command_v together_o with_o all_o the_o cause_n mean_n occasion_n and_o appearance_n thereof_o and_o provocation_n thereunto_o mat._n 5_o 21_o 22_o 27_o 28._o &_o 15_o 4_o 5_o 6._o heb._n 10_o 24_o 25._o 1_o thes._n 5_o 12._o jud._n vers_fw-la 23._o gal._n 5_o 26._o col._n 3_o 24._o that_o what_o be_v forbid_v or_o command_v to_o ourselves_o we_o be_v bind_v according_a to_o our_o place_n to_o endeavour_v that_o it_o may_v be_v avoid_v or_o perform_v by_o other_o according_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o place_n exod._n 20_o 10._o levit._fw-la 19_o 11._o gen._n 18_o 19_o josh._n 24_o 15._o deut._n 6_o 6_o 7._o that_o in_o what_o be_v command_v to_o other_o we_o be_v bind_v according_a to_o our_o place_n and_o calling_n to_o be_v helpful_a to_o they_o and_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o partake_v with_o other_o in_o what_o be_v forbid_v they_o 2_o cor._n 1_o 24._o 1_o tim._n 5_o 19_o ephes._n 5_o 11._o who_o i_o say_v that_o right_o consider_v these_o particular_n and_o how_o the_o law_n require_v that_o obedience_n shall_v be_v perform_v thereunto_o in_o the_o most_o high_a and_o intense_a degree_n without_o the_o least_o remissness_n of_o zeal_n and_o fervour_n that_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o obedience_n be_v spiritual_a from_o a_o right_a principle_n to_o a_o right_a end_n in_o a_o heavenly_a &_o spiritual_a manner_n that_o it_o may_v do_v in_o the_o spirit_n gal_n 5_o 16._o 1_o cor._n 14_o 14_o 15_o 16._o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o corrupt_a motion_n affection_n or_o inclination_n to_o evil_n no_o tickle_v of_o delight_n in_o the_o thing_n nor_o any_o discontent_n at_o our_o restraint_n from_o the_o evil_a even_o though_o our_o formal_a assent_n be_v not_o give_v thereto_o so_o that_o the_o very_a involuntary_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o evil_n though_o not_o assent_v to_o be_v prohibit_v as_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a law_n and_o as_o flow_v from_o a_o corrupt_a fountain_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a in-being_a of_o that_o body_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o evil_a motion_n he_o i_o say_v will_v in_o sobriety_n speak_v of_o a_o perfection_n attainable_a here_o but_o the_o only_a remedy_n here_o be_v to_o curtail_v the_o law_n that_o see_v they_o can_v conform_v to_o it_o it_o may_v conform_v to_o they_o as_o do_v the_o pharisee_n of_o old_a whence_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o such_o perfectionist_n to_o call_v the_o motion_n of_o lust_n and_o concupiscence_n within_o no_o sin_n &_o to_o plead_v for_o venial_a sin_n and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o gross_a exposition_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o duty_n therein_o enjoin_v one_o may_v wonder_v that_o these_o foremention_v shall_v be_v for_o perfection_n who_o of_o all_o person_n will_v seem_v to_o have_v least_o ground_n but_o the_o cause_n be_v they_o be_v all_o devote_a to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o free_a will_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o know_v no_o other_o holiness_n but_o what_o free_a will_n have_v a_o chief_a hand_n in_o &_o whereof_o they_o be_v whole_a master_n 18._o now_o we_o come_v to_o examine_v what_o he_o say_v against_o our_o judgement_n which_o be_v that_o in_o the_o best_a of_o our_o action_n which_o we_o here_o do_v there_o be_v some_o admixture_n of_o sin_n &_o corruption_n and_o none_o of_o they_o so_o perfect_a as_o to_o abide_v the_o strict_a examination_n of_o divine_a justice_n for_o his_o representation_n of_o our_o opinion_n that_o the_o saint_n neither_o can_v be_v nor_o ever_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n and_o that_o the_o saint_n be_v under_o a_o perpetual_a necessity_n of_o sin_v be_v ambiguous_a and_o very_a indistinct_a as_o may_v be_v show_v if_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o pain_n his_o first_o reason_n be_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o wisdom_n glorious_a virtue_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n who_o be_v of_o pure_a eye_n than_o he_o can_v behold_v iniquity_n ans._n be_v it_o against_o these_o attribute_n of_o god_n that_o sin_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n then_o we_o must_v say_v by_o this_o argument_n that_o all_o wicked_a man_n be_v perfect_a and_o sinless_a yea_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v perfect_a for_o the_o pure_a eye_n of_o god_n can_v not_o behold_v iniquity_n in_o wicked_a man_n of_o who_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v by_o habbakuk_n no_o nor_o in_o devil_n or_o be_v it_o only_o against_o these_o attribute_n that_o any_o remnant_n of_o corruption_n or_o sin_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o godly_a then_o this_o will_v prove_v the_o last_o perfection_n to_o wit_n a_o impossibility_n to_o sin_n to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o godly_a which_o yet_o he_o dust_n not_o say_v and_o not_o only_o the_o first_o perfection_n viz._n a_o possibility_n of_o not_o sin_v let_v we_o see_v if_o what_o he_o add_v can_v make_v he_o any_o relief_n s●ing_v say_v he_o god_n will_v gather_v a_o people_n to_o himself_o to_o worship_v he_o &_o be_v his_o witnese_n on_o earth_n without_o all_o doubt_n he_o sanctify_v &_o purifi_v they_o ans._n true_a he_o sanctify_v &_o purify_v they_o by_o degree_n till_o he_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o full_a perfection_n he_o have_v appoint_v for_o they_o in_o glory_n but_o himself_o will_v not_o say_v that_o he_o sanctify_v they_o always_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n and_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v regenerate_v be_v there_o no_o sanctification_n but_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a or_o be_v there_o no_o sanctification_n where_o there_o be_v the_o least_o sin_n then_o he_o must_v say_v that_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v as_o holy_a and_o as_o free_v of_o sin_n here_o as_o they_o will_v be_v in_o heaven_n then_o he_o must_v go_v high_a than_o ever_o pelagian_n socinian_o papist_n or_o arminian_n go_v and_o must_v join_v himself_o to_o the_o old_a beguard_n and_o beguines_fw-la we_o grant_v with_o he_o that_o god_n delight_v not_o in_o iniquity_n but_o abhor_v all_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o delight_v not_o in_o man_n as_o he_o join_v to_o sin_n yet_o he_o delight_v in_o man_n as_o join_v unto_o christ_n and_o as_o turn_v from_o sin_n by_o repentance_n and_o as_o fight_v the_o battle_n of_o the_o lord_n against_o the_o body_n of_o death_n within_o and_o as_o delight_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n after_o the_o inner_a man_n and_o say_v he_o if_o man_n be_v always_o to_o be_v join_v unto_o sin_n he_o shall_v be_v always_o disjoin_v from_o god_n according_a to_o esai_n 59_o 2._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2_o pet._n 1_o 4._o and_o be_v one_o spirit_n with_o he_o 1_o cor._n 6_o 17._o but_o what_o be_v impure_a can_v be_v so_o for_o there_o
4_o 11._o that_o pastor_n be_v give_v for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n etc._n etc._n till_o we_o all_o come_v unto_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n answ._n 1_o hence_o we_o see_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o stand_a ministry_n which_o yet_o he_o and_o be_v brethren_n be_v against_o as_o we_o shall_v hear_v 2._o the_o ministry_n be_v to_o bring_v they_o on_o towards_o perfection_n and_o be_v for_o the_o edify_a and_o build_v up_o of_o the_o body_n and_o of_o particular_a soul_n till_o we_o all_o come_v at_o length_n into_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o stature_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ._n how_o be_v it_o prove_v that_o this_o ultimat_fw-la end_n be_v attain_v here_o and_o further_o we_o tell_v above_o that_o there_o be_v a_o perfection_n comparative_a and_o in_o part_n here_o attainable_a and_o attain_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o grace_n &_o of_o the_o gift_n give_v to_o every_o man_n ephes._n 4_o 7._o 1_o cor._n 12_o 11._o but_o not_o a_o perfection_n of_o degree_n which_o exclude_v all_o increase_n and_o growth_n contrare_fw-la to_o 2_o pet._n 3_o 18._o phil._n 3_o 12_o 2_o thes._n 1_o 3._o not_o such_o a_o perfection_n as_o exclude_v all_o sin_n he_o add_v pag._n 158._o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v give_v to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a 2_o tim._n 3.17_o answ._n yes_o and_o they_o do_v that_o in_o their_o own_o manner_n as_o a_o perfect_a and_o complete_a rule_n give_v full_a instruction_n and_o information_n in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n contrare_fw-la to_o what_o himself_o teach_v above_o so_o that_o the_o the_o man_n of_o god_n needs_o to_o hearken_v to_o no_o dream_n enthusiasm_n or_o precept_n of_o man_n to_o learn_v what_o be_v god_n will_n how_o do_v our_o doctrine_n make_v prayer_n useless_a be_v not_o these_o prayer_n say_v he_o useless_a and_o without_o faith_n that_o be_v make_v for_o preservation_n from_o sin_n if_o withal_o they_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v not_o give_v they_o what_o they_o ask_v answ._n so_o say_v crellius_n the_o socinian_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o perfection_n seem_v rather_o to_o take_v away_o all_o use_n of_o such_o prayer_n for_o who_o will_v pray_v for_o that_o which_o they_o have_v 2._o if_o saint_n pray_v for_o a_o sinless_a state_n here_o they_o pray_v without_o warrant_n he_o that_o teach_v we_o to_o pray_v that_o we_o be_v not_o lead_v into_o temptation_n teach_v we_o also_o to_o pray_v for_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o say_v he_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o apostle_n col._n 4_o 12._o 1_o thes._n 3_o 13._o &_o 5_o 22_o etc._n etc._n do_v they_o pray_v so_o without_o faith_n ans._n this_o be_v another_o of_o crellius_n argument_n but_o we_o say_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o for_o a_o sinless_a state_n nor_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o the_o saint_n here_o can_v be_v in_o such_o a_o state_n as_o to_o sin_n no_o more_o nay_o while_o they_o pray_v thus_o for_o the_o saint_n they_o suppose_v that_o the_o saint_n have_v not_o yet_o attain_v to_o it_o epaphras_n not_o the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v say_v col._n 4_o 12._o to_o labour_n fervent_o in_o prayer_n that_o the_o colossian_n may_v stand_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o be_v may_v set_v the_o will_n of_o god_n only_o before_o they_o as_o their_o rule_n and_o hang_v upon_o no_o man_n as_o to_o their_o christian_a conduct_n but_o walk_v in_o sincerity_n as_o become_v christian_n follow_v the_o rule_n of_o god_n law_n and_o may_v not_o be_v always_o child_n toss_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o spoil_v through_o philosophy_n and_o vain_a deceit_n after_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n after_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o after_o christ_n as_o there_o be_v ground_n to_o fear_v as_o we_o see_v chap._n 2._o paul_n 1_o thes._n 3_o 12_o 13._o be_v clear_a against_o this_o imagine_a perfection_n for_o he_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v make_v they_o to_o increase_v and_o abound_v in_o love_n so_o that_o th●re_o be_v yet_o some_o shortcome_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v establish_v their_o heart_n unblameable_a in_o holiness_n at_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n so_o that_o he_o show_v not_o what_o a_o measure_n of_o love_n and_o holiness_n they_o will_v attain_v unto_o here_o but_o pray_v that_o it_o may_v always_o be_v grow_v until_o it_o attain_v its_o full_a perfection_n at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o be_v clear_a from_o 2_o thes._n 5_o 23._o which_o make_v against_o this_o imagine_a perfection_n and_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o perfection_n of_o part_n not_o of_o degree_n 24._o in_o the_o five_o place_n he_o reason_v thus_o pag._n 158._o §_o 7._o our_o doctrine_n be_v repugnant_a to_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n why_o so_o for_o these_o two_o opposite_a principle_n in_o the_o child_n of_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o child_n of_o light_n be_v sin_n and_o righteousness_n and_o as_o man_n be_v respective_o ferment_v with_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o so_o be_v they_o to_o be_v call_v justify_v or_o reprobate_v see_v he_o that_o justify_v the_o wicked_a and_o he_o that_o condemn_v the_o just_a even_o they_o both_o be_v abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n prov._n 17_o 15._o ans._n this_o argument_n will_v prove_v as_o well_o that_o full_a perfection_n which_o he_o deny_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o regenerate_v to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o state_n of_o christianity_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v answer_v it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o but_o 2._o that_o there_o be_v contrary_a principle_n in_o the_o godly_a and_o wicked_a be_v true_a and_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o there_o remain_v sin_n in_o the_o godly_a which_o flow_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o corruption_n yet_o the_o godly_a man_n be_v not_o ferment_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o dialect_n of_o the_o quaker_n or_o rather_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o dialect_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o under_o the_o dominion_n of_o that_o principle_n nor_o give_v up_o thereunto_o as_o the_o wicked_a be_v with_o full_a will_n consent_n and_o pleasure_n without_o any_o reluctancy_n or_o lust_a of_o a_o contrary_a principle_n 3._o it_o be_v not_o saife_n to_o call_v all_o not_o yet_o justify_v reprobat_fw-la 4._o the_o lord_n justify_v none_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o indeed_o this_o man_n opinion_n tend_v to_o a_o set_n up_o of_o justification_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n or_o inherent_a righteousness_n for_o if_o man_n can_v abide_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n he_o shall_v be_v free_a of_o the_o curse_n gal._n 3_o 10._o but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o best_a of_o saint_n psal._n 130_o 3._o &_o 143_o 2._o job._n 9_o 3._o &_o 4●_n 5._o 1_o cor._n 4_o 4._o and_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o then_o be_v weak_a because_o of_o flesh_n contrare_fw-la to_o rom._n 8.3_o and_o contrare_fw-la to_o that_o jam._n 2_o 10._o he_o who_o trangress_v in_o one_o be_v guilty_a in_o all_o and_o contrary_a to_o these_o scripture_n gal._n 3_o 21_o 22._o &_o 2_o 21_o &_o 3_o 10._o further_a say_n he_o then_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v call_v just_a who_o sin_v in_o all_o his_o action_n ans._n no_o man_n be_v calle●_n just_a before_o god_n in_o point_n of_o justification_n because_o of_o his_o inherent_a righteousness_n but_o because_o of_o the_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o he_o by_o god_n &_o receive_v by_o faith_n and_o as_o to_o sanctification_n such_o may_v be_v call_v just_a because_o of_o integrity_n sincerity_n &_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n &_o because_o of_o endeavour_v after_o conformity_n to_o the_o law_n in_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o which_o account_n the_o man_n be_v approven_v of_o god_n but_o not_o because_o he_o be_v sinless_a for_o than_o no_o man_n shall_v go_v under_o that_o denomination_n but_o say_v he_o the_o subject_n be_v donominate_v by_o the_o accident_n that_o adher_v ans._n yet_o a_o wall_n be_v call_v white_a though_o the_o whiteness_n be_v not_o perfect_a but_o mix_v and_o god_n give_v the_o denomination_n according_a to_o grace_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o better_a part_n though_o it_o sometime_o shall_v be_v the_o lesser_a part_n he_o ask_v where_o be_v then_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o of_o light_n the_o sanctify_a and_o purify_a one_o ans._n even_o where_o these_o be_v who_o be_v groan_v under_o a_o body_n of_o death_n and_o run_v daily_o to_o the_o
irreprehensible_a and_o sinless_a it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o indeed_o that_o they_o be_v blameless_a as_o all_o pastor_n shall_v be_v 1_o tim._n 3_o 2._o an●_n all_o christian_n phil._n 2_o 15._o but_o not_o that_o they_o be_v sinless_a and_o august_n lib._n cont_n caelest_n distinguish_v betwixt_o esse_fw-la sine_fw-la peccato_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la sine_fw-la querela_fw-la and_o he_o say_v this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o some_o but_o that_o of_o none_o but_o of_o christ._n what_o he_o say_v from_o ephes._n 2_o 5_o 6._o be_v true_a viz._n that_o such_o as_o sit_v with_o christ_n to_o wit_n actual_o sin_v no_o more_o but_o now_o they_o sit_v not_o actual_o there_o but_o only_o in_o christ_n jesus_n their_o head_n as_o for_o heb._n 12_o 22_o 23._o whatever_a beginning_n there_o may_v be_v thereof_o here_o yet_o its_o fullness_n be_v above_o revel_v 14_o 5._o speak_v not_o of_o perfection_n here_o but_o of_o their_o blamelesness_n that_o be_v their_o sincerity_n and_o uprightness_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o he_o adduce_v to_o prove_v his_o opinion_n by_o and_o how_o slender_a his_o ground_n be_v let_v any_o judge_n 28._o he_o come_v at_o length_n to_o answer_v some_o of_o our_o argument_n §_o 9_o pag._n 161._o etc._n etc._n and_o to_o that_o bring_v from_o 1_o joh._n 1.8_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o &_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o he_o wonder_v that_o we_o be_v so_o blind_a &_o partial_a as_o to_o alleige_v this_o place_n against_o which_o so_o much_o may_v be_v say_v let_v we_o hear_v what_o can_v be_v say_v he_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o include_v the_o apostle_n as_o we_o see_v jam._n 3_o 9_o 10._o ans._n that_o place_n of_o james_n take_v in_o all_o even_o the_o apostle_n though_o not_o for_o the_o present_a time_n and_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v what_o a_o member_n the_o tongue_n be_v and_o he_o may_v say_v as_o well_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o include_v 1_o joh._n 1_o 7_o 9_o 10._o nor_o chap._n 2_o 1_o 2_o 3._o but_o n●xt_n be_v it_o so_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o here_o express_o include_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o believer_n to_o who_o john_n write_v that_o their_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a vers_n 4._o and_o who_o have_v interest_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n vers_fw-la 7._o and_o be_v child_n chap._n 2_o vers_fw-la 1._o and_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a ibid._n and_o be_v brethren_z vers_n 7._o who_o have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o vers_n 12._o and_o know_v the_o father_n vers_fw-la 13._o and_o among_o these_o come_v in_o also_o the_o young_a man_n and_o the_o father_n mention_v vers_fw-la 13_o 14._o what_o say_v he_o next_o here_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o we_o daily_a sin_n in_o word_n and_o deed_n far_o less_o that_o all_o our_o best_a work_n be_v sinful_a for_o the_o follow_a verse_n show_v the_o contrary_a where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o such_o as_o confess_v their_o sin_n get_v pardon_n and_o be_v washen_n and_o this_o cleanse_n can_v be_v mean_v of_o remit_v the_o guilt_n for_o that_o be_v express_v by_o forgive_n otherwise_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o tautology_n here_o ans._n 1._o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o this_o place_n prove_v that_o believer_n be_v not_o so_o perfect_a as_o to_o be_v sinless_a here_o 2._o it_o be_v true_a believer_n confess_v their_o sin_n and_o flee_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o christ_n blood_n cleanse_v they_o from_o guilt_n and_o stain_n but_o that_o cleanse_v from_o the_o stain_n and_o filth_n be_v not_o perfect_a here_o for_o then_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o remission_n and_o believer_n may_v say_v they_o have_v no_o sin_n contrare_fw-la to_o what_o be_v here_o say_a verse_n 8._o and_o chap._n 2_o 1._o in_o the_o 3._o place_n he_o distinguish_v betwixt_o sin_v and_o have_v sin_n as_o volkelius_n the_o socinian_n lib._n 5._o c._n 19_o do_v to_o elude_v this_o place_n betwixt_o have_v of_o sin_n and_o be_v accustom_v to_o sin_n and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o because_o all_o have_v sin_v it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o have_v sin_n just_o as_o smalcius_n the_o socinian_n say_v disp_v 6._o de_fw-la bonis_fw-la oper._n pag._n 178._o but_o we_o ans._n that_o the_o apostle_n express_o say_v both_o that_o we_o have_v sin_n vers_fw-la 8._o and_o that_o we_o have_v have_v sin_n vers_fw-la 10._o and_o he_o that_o sin_v in_o the_o present_a time_n he_o have_v sin_n in_o the_o present_a time_n and_o beside_o this_o have_v of_o sin_n he_o suppon_v that_o they_o may_v sin_v say_v chap._n 2_o 1_o my_o little_a child_n these_o thing_n write_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o sin_v not_o that_o be_v not_o that_o you_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n and_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n that_o be_v in_o the_o present_a and_o future_a time_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o apostle_n clear_v vers_fw-la 9_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o have_v of_o sin_n vers_fw-la 8._o by_o say_v if_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n for_o here_o he_o can_v mean_v no_o other_o than_o such_o sin_n as_o need_v foregiveness_n and_o not_o such_o as_o be_v former_o be_v hen_n away_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n vers_fw-la 7._o moreover_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o sin_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n that_o for_o some_o time_n remain_v even_o in_o such_o as_o be_v redeem_v from_o actual_a sin_n and_o when_o the_o child_n of_o god_n resist_v the_o temptation_n that_o come_v from_o this_o seed_n it_o be_v not_o their_o sin_n but_o the_o devil_n that_o tempt_v ans._n 1._o this_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v sinful_a and_o as_o lon●_n as_o this_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v in_o they_o they_o can_v be_v perfect_a 2._o the_o apostle_n be_v speak_v of_o actual_a sin_n not_o exclude_v this_o seed_n and_o body_n of_o death_n which_o must_v be_v confess_v before_o they_o be_v actual_o pardon_v and_o they_o cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o they_o vers_n 9_o 3._o in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o godly_a resist_v these_o temptation_n they_o do_v well_o but_o even_o these_o sinful_a motion_n of_o corruption_n within_o they_o be_v transgression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o shall_v be_v mourn_v for_o and_o be_v evidence_n that_o the_o flesh_n lust_v against_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v every_o way_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v what_o he_o say_v in_o the_o last_o place_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o place_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o wrest_v as_o to_o speak_v against_o what_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v frequent_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n be_v found_v upon_o his_o presumption_n and_o false_a supposition_n that_o he_o have_v prove_v this_o perfection_n from_o this_o epistle_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v show_v 29._o to_o 1_o king_n 8_o 46._o and_o eccles._n 7_o 20._o he_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o here_o say_v of_o sin_v daily_o yea_o sal●mon_n in_o that_o place_n two_o verse_n thereafter_o speak_v of_o they_o that_o turn_v from_o their_o sin_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n which_o insinuate_v a_o possibility_n of_o relinquish_a sin_n ans._n it_o be_v express_v in_o ecclesiastes_n that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o just_a man_n upon_o earth_n that_o do_v good_a and_o sin_v not_o clear_o import_v that_o even_o in_o their_o do_v good_a they_o sin_n and_o so_o that_o they_o sin_n daily_o what_o follow_v 1_o king_n 8_o 48._o speak_v only_o of_o their_o repentance_n which_o we_o deny_v not_o to_o be_v possible_a but_o nothing_o of_o this_o possibility_n of_o not_o sin_v he_o answer_v 2._o though_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o sin_v not_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o now_o or_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o such_o ans._n 1._o then_o he_o must_v say_v either_o that_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v none_o regenerate_v no_o not_o solomon_n himself_o or_o that_o his_o position_n be_v false_a which_o make_v this_o common_a to_o all_o regenerate_v person_n 2._o we_o have_v prove_v it_o not_o only_o under_o the_o old_a test._n but_o also_o under_o the_o new_a &_o what_o need_v more_o 3._o we_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o a_o simple_a impossibility_n as_o if_o it_o surpass_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o cause_v such_o a_o thing_n but_o of_o a_o ordinary_a impossibility_n matter_n stand_v as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wise_a ordination_n of_o god_n who_o
to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n no_o less_o true_o and_o real_o than_o the_o element_n themselves_o be_v to_o their_o outward_a sense_n mat._n 26_o 26_o 28._o and_o they_o that_o worthy_o communicate_v in_o this_o ordinance_n do_v therein_o feed_v upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o after_o a_o corporal_n and_o carnal_a but_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n yet_o true_o and_o real_o 1_v cor._n 11_o 24_o 29._o while_n by_o faith_n they_o receive_v and_o apply_v unto_o themselves_o christ_n crucify_a and_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n 1_o cor._n 10_o 16_o therefore_o as_o upon_o the_o one_o hand_n we_o must_v reject_v all_o corruption_n of_o &_o corrupt_a opinion_n concern_v this_o ordinance_n such_o as_o the_o popish_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n a_o most_o abominable_a device_n injurious_a to_o christ_n one_o only_a sacrifice_n the_o alone_a propitiation_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o elect_a heb._n 7_o v._n 23_o 24_o 27._o &_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 14_o 18._o for_o in_o this_o sacrament_n christ_n be_v not_o offer_v up_o to_o his_o father_n nor_o any_o real_a sacrifice_n make_v at_o all_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o quick_a or_o dead_a heb._n 9_o 22.25_o 26_o 28._o but_o only_a a_o commemoration_n of_o that_o one_o offer_v up_o of_o himself_o by_o himself_n upon_o the_o cross_n once_o for_o all_o and_o a_o spiritual_a oblation_n of_o all_o spiritual_a praise_n unto_o god_n for_o the_o same_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 24_o 25_o 26._o mat._n 26_o 26_o 27._o as_o also_o private_a mass_n or_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n by_o a_o priest_n or_o any_o other_o alone_o 1_o cor._n 10_o 6_o and_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o cup_n to_o the_o people_n mark_v 14_o 23._o 1_o cor._n 11_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28_o 29._o worship_v the_o element_n the_o lift_v they_o up_o or_o carry_v they_o about_o for_o adoration_n and_o the_o reserve_v they_o for_o any_o pretend_a religious_a use_n they_o be_v all_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n mat._n 15_o 9_o as_o also_o the_o doctrine_n which_o maintain_v a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n common_o call_v transubstantiation_n by_o consecration_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o by_o any_o other_o way_n as_o be_v repugnant_a not_o to_o scripture_n alone_o but_o even_o to_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n and_o overthrow_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o have_v be_v and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o manifold_a superstition_n yea_o of_o gross_a idolatry_n act._n 3_o 21_o with_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 24.25_o 26._o luk._n 24_o 6_o 39_o for_o though_o the_o outward_a element_n here_o due_o set_v apart_o to_o the_o use_v ordain_v by_o christ_n have_v such_o relation_n to_o he_o crucify_v as_o that_o true_o yet_o sacramental_o only_a they_o be_v sometime_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o represent_v to_o wit_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n mat._n 26_o 26_o 27_o 28._o yet_o in_o substance_n and_o nature_n they_o still_o remain_v true_o and_o only_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o they_o be_v before_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 26_o 27_o 28._o mat._n 26_o 29._o as_o i_o say_v we_o must_v reject_v these_o error_n about_o this_o ordinance_n so_o upon_o the_o other_o hand_n we_o must_v own_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o its_o administration_n according_a to_o christ_n appointment_n which_o be_v that_o his_o minister_n declare_v his_o word_n of_o institution_n to_o the_o people_n pray_v and_o bless_v the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n &_o thereby_o set_v they_o apart_o from_o a_o common_a to_o a_o holy_a use_n and_o take_v and_o break_v the_o bread_n take_v the_o cup_n and_o they_o communicate_v also_o themselves_o give_v both_o to_o the_o communicant_n mat._n 26_o 26_o 27_o 28_o mark_v 14_o 22_o 23_o 24._o luk_n 22_o 19_o 20._o with_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26_o but_o to_o none_o who_o be_v not_o then_o present_a in_o the_o congregation_n act._n 20_o 7._o 1_o cor._n 11_o 20._o and_o the_o communicant_n be_v by_o the_o same_o appointment_n to_o take_v and_o eat_v the_o bread_n and_o to_o drink_v the_o wine_n in_o thankful_a remembrance_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v break_v and_o give_v and_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o they_o 1_o cor._n 11_o v._n 23_o 24._o mat_n 26_o v._n 26_o 27_o 28._o mark_v 14_o 22_o 23_o 24._o luk._n 22_o 19_o 20_o and_o mind_n the_o right_a way_n of_o approach_v both_z as_o to_o preparation_n before_o &_o in_o the_o time_n of_o administration_n and_o after_o all_o which_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o large_a catechism_n quaest_n 171_o 174_o 175._o and_o withal_o remember_v that_o although_o ignorant_a &_o wicked_a man_n receive_v the_o outward_a element_n in_o this_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o thing_n signify_v thereby_o but_o by_o their_o unworthy_a come_n thereunto_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n wherefore_o all_o ignorant_a and_o ungodly_a person_n as_o they_o be_v unfit_a to_o enjoy_v communion_n with_o he_o so_o be_v they_o unworthy_a of_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o can_v without_o great_a sin_n against_o christ_n while_o they_o remain_v such_o partake_v of_o these_o holy_a mystery_n 1_o cor._n 11_o 27_o 28_o 29._o 2_o cor._n 6_o 14_o 15_o 16._o may_n and_o aught_o notwithstanding_o of_o their_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v keep_v from_o this_o sacrament_n by_o the_o power_n which_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o his_o church_n 1_o cor._n 11_o 27._o to_o the_o end_n mat._n 7_o 9_o 1_o cor._n 5._o jud._n v_o 23._o 1_o tim._n 5_o 22._o until_o they_o receive_v instruction_n and_o manifest_v their_o reformation_n 2_o cor._n 1_o 7_o withal_o it_o will_v be_v remember_v that_o this_o sacrament_n and_o baptism_n though_o they_o agree_v in_o these_o thing_n that_o the_o author_n of_o both_o be_v god_n mat._n 28_o v._n 19_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 23._o the_o spiritual_a part_n of_o both_o be_v christ_n and_o his_o benefit_n rom._n 6_o 3_o 4._o 1_o cor._n 10_o v._n 16._o both_o be_v seal_n of_o the_o same_o covenant_n rom._n 4_o v._n 11._o with_o col._n 2_o vers_fw-la 11_o 12._o mat._n 26_o 27_o 28._o both_o be_v to_o be_v dispense_v by_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o by_o none_o other_o john_n 1_o 33._o mat._n 28_o 19_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 23._o &_o 4_o 1_o 2._o heb._n 5_o 4._o and_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n until_o his_o second_o come_n mat._n 28_o 19_o 20._o 1_o cor._n 11_o 26._o yet_o they_o differ_v in_o that_o baptism_n be_v to_o be_v administer_v but_o once_o with_o water_n to_o be_v a_o seal_n &_o sign_n of_o our_o regeneration_n &_o engraft_v into_o christ_n mat._n 3_o 11._o tit._n 3_o v_o 5_o gal._n 3_o 27._o and_o that_o even_o to_o infant_n gen._n 17_o 7_o 9_o act._n 2_o 38_o 39_o 2_o cor._n 7_o 14._o whereas_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v to_o be_v administrate_v often_o in_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o represent_v and_o exhibit_v christ_n as_o spiritual_a nourishment_n to_o the_o soul_n 1_o cor._n 11_o 23_o to_o 26_o &_o to_o confirm_v our_o continuance_n and_o growth_n in_o he_o 1_o cor._n ●0_n 16._o and_o that_o only_a to_o such_o as_o be_v of_o year_n &_o ability_n to_o examine_v themselves_o 1_v cor._n 11_o vers_fw-la 28_o 29._o 3._o this_o short_a account_n out_o of_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o large_a catechism_n of_o this_o mater_fw-la i_o think_v fit_a to_o premise_v that_o all_o may_v see_v what_o that_o doctrine_n be_v which_o we_o own_o and_o these_o man_n oppose_v and_o all_o may_v see_v the_o desperate_a wickedness_n of_o these_o sacrilegious_a anti_n christian_n who_o labour_n thus_o desperate_o to_o deprive_v the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n of_o all_o the_o soul_n quicken_a and_o soul_n strengthen_v and_o comfort_v ordinence_n which_o christ_n out_o of_o great_a love_n to_o his_o redeem_a people_n have_v gracious_o institute_v for_o establish_v and_o build_v they_o up_o in_o their_o most_o holy_a faith_n what_o gracious_a soul_n that_o have_v ever_o taste_v of_o the_o sweet_a refresh_n and_o soul-rejoyceing_a communication_n of_o grace_n and_o love_n from_o the_o god_n of_o all_o grace_n and_o love_n in_o this_o special_a ordinance_n can_v endure_v to_o hear_v these_o soul-murtherer_n thus_o bereave_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o sweet_a feast_n these_o delude_a deceiver_n talk_v much_o of_o their_o experience_n which_o yet_o be_v but_o the_o delusory_a gratification_n of_o their_o blind_a imagination_n and_o the_o